LD 4(13 U t 7- \>\.-"'^/> ^'y^^'"°'\% '■^"■■sm^^ % <^^ ;.V '/>. ^S ^oo^ ' ' a\ .-on Silver Jubilee OF THE Uniu^rsitg 4 Js^^^ j]^J^^t n/ JUNE 23rd, 1869, — " GeiiHs immortale maiiet, mnltosque per annos Stat fortuna domus et avi nuiueiantur avorum." VlRGll,. COMPILED AND PUBLISHED BY JOSEPH A. LYONS, A. M. SECOND EDITION, RE\'ISED AND ENLARGED. CHI C AGO : B. MYERS & COMPANY, 87 Washington Street. I 869. \. I u ^1^ A Entered according to Act of Congress, in the year 1869, by JOSEPH A. LYONS, A. M., In the Clerk's Office of the District Court for the Northern District of Illinois. TO THE STUDENTS OF NOTKE DAME, This Work Compiled as a Memorial of their College Days, and a Happy Presage of Days to Come, Is Respectfully Dedicated, by Their Devoted Friend, J. A. Lyons, A. M., June 23d, 1869. I^omptk'^ mifHi^ tc Jirst jBm. In issuing the present hasty edition of this work, we feel it due to our readers as well as ourselves, to remark that being intended to appear on the Day of the Jubilee itself, the hurry and consequent imperfections in its issue have been unavoidable. Although the typographical execution has been entrusted to a firm of eminent painstaking and skill in workmanship, yet the short time allotted to the revision of proofs, etc., has occasioned a great many errors to go unperceived until too late for correction. Any of these, however, which shall be kindly noticed by our friends, will be promptly cor- rected in the second edition. In view of this state of affairs, the compiler, while returning sin- cere thanks to Eev. N. H. Gillespie, Rev. M. B. Brown, and Profs. Howard and Stace, the efficient writers of the various departments of the work, fully exonerates them from any tricks of the type which may have made mischief of their manuscript, as they had neither the time nor the opportunities afforded them for their correction. He believes that a little good understanding among our readers, — who after all, will be our warm friends, not cold worldly critics, — will supply all deficiencies and make the book what it is aimed to be— a Memorial that the affectionate child of our common Abna Mater may take up from time to time to awaken in his heart kind memo- ries of the abode and the friends of his younger days. If such an object shall have been attained, it will be ample satis- faction to the devoted friend of all students, old and new, of Notre Dame. The Compiler and PuBLisnER. ;3r^faa io tite Second Mlim. In preparing a Second Edition of the Silver Jubilee Book, we have reason to congratulate ourselves on the success of the First, and on the increasing demand which calls tor a fresh supply. Our new Edition contains a full account of many things which could only be touched upon in the former, — among others, the eloquent and extemporaneous address of Rev. F. P. Boyle to the Graduates of '69, which carried the hearts of his audience, as it were, by storm. We wish we could reproduce here the orotund voice and elegant gesture which lent such a charm to this splendid address, but we are compelled to report the bare words, and leave our readers to imagine the spirit that animated them. We add, besides, sketches of the lives of the graduates of the present year, with similar notices of elected members. Also, a fuller account of the day's doings than could be prepared at the time. We are happy to be able to conclude our work with a graphic description of a neighboring establishment, St. Mary's Academy, which is devoted to the same noble end of religious education as Notre Dame, and is to the young ladies of the great North West, what our own Institution is to their brothers. The name of Mother Angela, Supreme Directress of St. Mary's Academy, has been long and favorably known, not only in connection with Catholic educa- tion, but also with deeds of heroic charity and compassion, performed m behalf of the poor wounded soldier, of both north and south, during the late sanguinary struggle. The Compiler. |)ett«»ial l^ontpts. PAGE. History of Notre Dame 7 to 46 The University 47 to 72 The Associated Alumni 75 to 174 The Oration of the Day 175 to 193 The Poem 194 to 200 The Celebration of 1868-9 203 to 225 The 25th Annual Commencement 225 to 233 The Officers and Professors of Notre Dame 239 to 241 The Associations— Keligious, Literary, Dramatic, etc 242 to 257 Poem to Very Rev. Father Sorin, S. S. C 258 to 263 St. Mary's Academy 264 Officers of the Alumni Association for 1869 265 Closing Exercises of Notre Dame University 266 Officers of the Alumni Association of 1869-70 268 Father Boyle's Oration 287 Closing Exercises of St. Mary's Academy 292 St. Mary's Academy 297 Associated Alumni of 1869 305 I Girt mmt. On a cold IS'oYember eTening in the year of grace, 1842, a young priest stood near the old log house on the banks of the little lake called St. Mary's, and viewed for the first time the principal field of his future labors. The frozen lake, the prairie beyond it, the small portion of cleared ground were all covered with snow; the branches of the trees drooped under the weight of the snow; the evergreens, even the rail-fences, and the stumps that thickly studded the ten acre lot, were ren- dered fairy like with snow ; snow, cold, pure, beautify- ing snow lay thick and heavy all around, and as the rays of the setting sun, struggling through the winter clouds, cast their magic light over the wide expanse of snow-covered land, the young priest consecrated it anew to the Yirgin Mother of God, to whom, in his great love for her, all his undertakings, great or small, were always lovingly submitted. The young priest was Father Sorin ; the place, ]S"otre 8 UOTVEESITT OF DamjB du Lac ; two names that will always be associated, ever linked together in the memory of old students and old friends, and will go down together in the religious and educational annals of our country. But though in the following pages Father Sorin's name must frequently be mentioned, it is by no means our intention to give even a sketch of his life. Father Sorin still lives, thank God, and long may he live ! his deeds already accomplished and those hereafter to be done need another to recount them. The feeble pen, which traces these lines, were not worthy to reveal in full the life of Father Sorin. But of l^otre Dame, this pen can write, if not in a worthy manner, at least with a great deal of affection- ate regard and kindly feelings for every perv^on and every thing connected with it ; it can essay to offer a tribute of praise to its Patroness, of profound and affectionate regard to its Founder, of respect and cordial esteem to the members of the Congregation of Holy Cross, and the Faculty of JSTotre Dame, and of hearty, sympathetic sentiments to all the Alumni — the old boys, and to the actual students of the College. To begin : — Kotre Dame du Lac was purchased in 1830, by Kev. Theodore Badin, the first priest ever ordained in the United States. It was then known by the Indians and the few settlers around as /Ste. Marie des Lacs^ and was made by Father Badin the centre of quite a range of KOTEE DAME. 9 missions, and the residence of the priest who attended the scattering Catholic popnLation of Northern Indiana and Southern Michis^an. The missions extended from Cold Water, east, to the Illinois line, west, and from Kala- mazoo, north, to Rochester, south. It is true that those villages and others on the confines of the circle were occasionally visited hj priests from other neighboring missions, but, until the formation of the northern part of Indiana into a separate diocese, all of the country con- tained within the circumference of a circle passing through these points, with Notre Dame as a centre, was attended from the latter place. Father Badin having purchased the land and estab- lished the little log church as a central point, did not leave this part of the country without attending to the wants of the poor savages who still dwelt in Northern Indiana, many of them were already Catholics, and the rest were converted to the Catholic religion by Father Badin a] id his worthy successors in these mis- sions, the first of whom was Father Deseille. This zealous priest, dwelling amid the hardships of the early missions, displayed the courage and self-abnegation of the true missionary and apostle. Everything seemed to promise him a long life among his flock, but death soon summoned him, and in 1838 he died in his poor log church, alone. No, not alone, but with God, and no mortal near. With the last feeble remnant of his strength he dragged himself to the altar, and with his own hands 10 UNIVERSITY OF gave himself the Holy Yiaticum for the great journey to eternity, then laid himself down to die at the foot of the altar on which he had so often and with so much fervor offered up the Divine Yictim. The excellent Father Petit, who from a lawyer of Rennes, became a missionary in the diocese of Yin- cennes, was sent the day after his ordination to replace Father Deseille. He took up his residence in the log house of Ste. Marie des Lacs^ but lived there only a short time ; death marked him on the very commence- ment of his missionary career, but not before he had endeared himself in an extraordinary degree to all who knew him. He died in St. Louis on his return from an expedition to the West, whither he had accompanied ses chers Indiens^ to the lands provided for them beyond the Mississippi. His name is held in veneration by all who can appreciate self sacrifice, and devotedness to the welfare of others. During his short residence at Ste. Marie des Lacs^ he baptized with his own hand three hundred Indians, and had as many as two hundred of them confirmed at one time, in the log church by the side of the lake. It seemed just and proper that the body of Father Petit should have its last resting place after death where he had done so much s^ood durins: life. In 185Y, Father Sorin had the mortal remains of the faithful priest and zealous missionary brought to l^otre Dame, where, in the church, they repose by the side of his NOTRE DAME. 11 predecessor, Fatlier Deseille, and of a worthy successor to his apostolic labors, Rev. Father Francis Cointet. The death of Father Petit left the missions around Ste. Marie des Lacs in an abandoned state ; it was then that Rt. Rev. C. de la Hailandiere, Bishop of Yincennes, the successor of the saintly Bishop Brut^, offered the grounds of Ste. Marie des Lacs to Father Sorin on con- dition that in a certain space of time the latter should put up a college building and maintain it. Thus, Ste. Marie des Laes became Notre Dame du Lac, and the log church, 20 by 40, with a little frame house adjoining has been transformed into the present estab- lishment of Notre Dame. When Father Sorin viewed the snow covered ground of Notre Dame, the 26th of November, 1842, he had just arrived from Yincennes, near which he had, one year before, founded a religious establishment of Broth- ers, who had accompanied him from the city of Mans, and whose numbers had been increased by several Pos- tulants. Leaving this establishment — St. Peter's it was called — in the care of Brother Yincent, Father Sorin took seven Brothers with him and started for his new mission. His companions were Brothers Francis Xavier, Gatien, Patrick, William, Basil, Pierre and Francis, all of whom have gone to their last long rest, except Brother Francis Xavier, who has. made the coffins of all who have died at Notre Dame, and most likely will do the same kind 12 UNIYEESITY OF office for many more yet before lie drives the last nail into his own. ITotre Dame is on a farm originally of over six hun- dred acres, lying on the right bank of St. Joseph's Eiver, in St. Joseph County, Indiana, about two miles from the railroad station at South Bend, on the M. S. & JST. I. K. R. which connects Chicago with Toledo and Detroit, and ten miles from the railroad station in Mies, on the Mich- igan Central, which also connects Chicago and Detroit. It is unnecessary to enter into further details to show that J^otre Dame is of easy access by railroad from all parts of the United States and Canada. The city of Chicago is about three hours easy ride from [N^otre Dame, and supplies the establishment with tea and coffee. Having thus briefly pointed out the exact topography and the relative positions of Chicago and E^otre Dame, for the benefit of the few who, at this date, may be igno- rant of the exact position of those important places — we go back to the early days of the establishment. The farm of Kotre Dame, in those days consisted of six hundred and fifteen acres, of which only ten were cleared, the other acres being covered with forest trees and thick underbrush, except some hundred or more that were covered by the water of the lakelets from which the establishment took its name. These lakes are about twenty-five or thirty feet deep ; the banks consist of marl from which excellent lime is made. NOTKE DAME. 13 The only house on the premises was the one before alluded to, built of logs, in the old style of log cabin — forty feet by twenty-four. The ground floor was the res- idence of the priest, while the upper story was the only church or chapel for the Catholics of South Bend and aroundabout. A small frame house clinging to this sturdy log one, was occupied by the family of a man who acted as interpreter between the Indians and whites when occasion required. It would give us great pleasure, and no doubt it would give as much to our readers, to dwell on this part of the history of iSTotre Dame, to note the size and population of the villages in the neighborhood and other interesting trifles, but it would make our unpretentious narrative too volumninous. We cannot, however, pass siiently over one feature of those far off and long past days, the recalling of which will demonstrate as much the liberal views and enlightenment of the majority of non-Cath- olics of the present day as it will bring in bold relief the bigotry and ignorance of the orthodox protestant pulpits of those dark ages. Those were the days when meeting houses were plenty, and Catholics scattered about, rarely seeing a priest, and, though strong in their faith, but poorly instructed in their belief and generally unable to refute the vast amount of calumny that was heaped upon the Catholic Church. South Bend, then, as now, was a very religious and, to judge from the numbers of church steeples, very pious place. Mishawaka, never liking to be 14 UNIVERSITY OF behind the age or South Bend, ran several churches along j with its foundries. Niles boasted its half dozen or more . steeples. When it was known that Father Sorin and the ' seven Brothers had arrived at ]N"otre Dame, and that he \ intended putting up a Catholic College, there was much j trouble among the reverend gentlemen who held forth in i the pulpits of the towns above mentioned. Father Sorin i was at once multiplied bj twelve, and was made to stand [ for one dozen Popish Priests, it was considered a fair val- ' nation, rather under than over the mark, to count the ] seven Brothers, twenty. And it was announced that twelve Roman Priests and twenty Monks were " out at ; the lake " — that the Pope of Rome, (Oh, my brethren, ' 0-o-h ! ) had already sent $90,000 to Father Sorin, and | would shortly send over the trifling sum of $10,000 more \ to make a round figure. The above is no fancy sketch but actually took place, and no doubt some good souls listen- ing to those men of peace and goodwill, thought that the Pope would soon come and settle in South Bend or Mish- awaka. Such exaggeration, however, only proves that some of the reverend gentlemen had a vivid imagination which, if applied to legitimate objects, poetry, for in- stance, or anniversary meetings of Bible and Missionary i Societies, might produce no evil effect ; but in this case they came near doing harm, which we cannot believe they really intended ; when the walls of the old College building were going up, some of the excited ones took NOTRE DAME. 15 deliglit in tlireatening that as soon as the College was built they would burn it to the ground. Such threats, we now know, were in many instances made more as a joke than in real earnest, and we hope such was the case in this instance ; but we need only to look at Charlestown convent, and the rebuilt Catho- lic churches of Philadelphia, to assure ourselves they were not always empty threats; and we need not be surprised, therefore, if men lately arrived in the country should have been alarmed. It is a pleasure to testify here, and thus give a big advertisement to South Bend, in which we take great interest, that the city follows the Progress of the Age, and keeps up with the times ; and if any remnant of the ignorance of these past days remain, its effects are shown, not in a desire to burn down houses that are ornaments to city and country, but rather in the harm- less tirades against the Pope, made by the very few who have not yet laid aside the prejudices of their child- hood's days, or perhaps have not had an opportunity of knowino^ better. Brother Yincent, who had accompanied Father Sorin from France, and whom we all know as the venerable Director of the Brothers' [N'ovitiate, where he is so highly revered, could not remain at St. Peter's while Father Sorin was at IS'otre Dame ; by his advice, and having obtained permission, he transplanted the whole establishment of St. Peter's to ]^otre Dame, in the 16 TJNIVEESITT OF montli of February, 1843. He and Brother Lawrence have been throughout the efficient aids of Father Sorin. Father Sorin's joy at their arrival was no less than the Brothers', and theirs may be judged from what he wrote shortly after their arrival : " Our separation had lasted four months — it seemed to them four years." Leur sepa- ration n\ivait dure que quatre mois^ elle leur avaitparic quatre annees. Before the arrival of Brother Yincent and his colony from St. Peter's, Father Sorin had made bargains for the bvick, lumber, etc., to begin building the College as soon as the spring would open ; but a more pressing need had to be attended to ; — a church had to be built. An appeal was made to the few Catholics around ; they could or would do little — most of them were poor, many were not very fervent. However, a subscription was made : it was paid in labor. On a certain time they got together ; cut down logs enough to build a church forty-six feet long and twenty wide ; when the logs were hauled to the spot where the church was to be built, near the old log house — near where the barn now stands, the people assembled, and soon rolled the building up, and then departed, leaving Father Sorin to finish it. This he did, with the assistance of the Brothers, and, as may readily be supposed, without going to much expense for ornamental architecture. Ihis building was used as a church until 1818; it caught fire accidentally in 1856, and in spite of the NOTBE DAME. 17 efforts made bj students, professors, Brothers and priests, who wished to preserve it as a monument of the past, it burned to the ground, and nearly made a gen- eral conflagration of the church and College. The winter of 1842^3 was very severe ; for full five months the ground was covered with snow ; the spring was late ; some of the contractors who had bargained to furnish materials for building failed to fulfill their en- gagement ; the architect did not arrive at the appointed time, and so many things conspired against the erection of the College — and the want of funds was not the least obstacle in the way — that it was determined not to begin the College until the following year. A valuable addition was made in the month of July to the members of the community by the arrival of the second colony from France, consisting of Father Cointet, M. I'Abbe Marivault, and M. I'Abbe Gouesse, one lay brother, and three religieuses^ Sister Mary of Bethle- hem, Sister Mary of Calvary, and Sister Mary of E'azareth. As the design of building the College that year was abandoned, a smaller house was decided upon, and the brick building close by the lake known now as The Farm House was erected. The Community of E'otre Dame, which now began to be numerous, had finished their an- nual spiritual retreat, when late in August the architect arrived from Yincennes with workmen to begin the Col- lege. On the 28th of August the corner-stone was laid; 2 18 TNIVEESITY OF the building was pushed forward, and by the month of December it was under roof — ^but the plastering had to be postponed until the following spring. In the month of June, the few pupils who had been accommodated in the brick house near the lake, were removed to the College building, and in the month of August took place the first Commencement Exercises of ]^otre Dame. Before the College walls were up to the third story, measures had been taken to secure a Charter for the College and for the Manual Labor School, which latter establishment was, and has ever been, one of the favor- ite enterprises of Father Sorin. Stern duty compelled us, as veracious chroniclers, to mention some manifestations of bigotry and ignorance displayed against the Order of Holy Cross on the first arrival of Father Sorin ; the same duty now becomes a pleasure, as it requires us to record an act of spontaneous kindness on the part of a member of the Methodist de- nomination, Mr. Dufrees. This gentleman was then the representative of St. Joseph County in the State Legisla- ture ; he generously suggested to Father Sorin the idea of applying for a Charter, and through the aid of Mr. Dufrees one was obtained for the College, w^ith the title of LTniversity, and another for the Manual Labor School. As we are on tliis agreeable subject, we would like to mention the names of all who from this time forward came out bravely as friends to Father Sorin and the grand undertaking he had in hand. But to mention all would NOTKE DAME. 19 be impossible. We cannot, however, pass over the name of Mr. Samuel Bjerlej, who received Father Sorin with great hospitality on his first arrival in 'New York in ISil. when he landed on the 13th of September, the eve of the Feast of the Exaltation of the Holy Cross.* Both Mr. and Mrs. Bverlev manifested to Father Sorin and his community that affable and unpretending hos- pitality for wdiich they have always been distinguished. The first building erected was the central part of the old College edifice : as near as we can remember, it was four stories high, eighty feet long, and forty or fifty wide. One of the reminiscences that Father Sorin recalls with the most pleasurable emotions, and of which we have often heard him speak, is the retreat he made in 1843 on the mound between the two lakelets of Xotre Dame, f AYhile making this retreat he did not think it a waste of time to occupy a part of each day in clearing off" the ground on which to build a Chapel. This was in the month of November ; next spring all were busy building the College; and the Chapel was not finished * Father Sorin always considered it as a particular favor from G-od that the first Mass he said in America was on a feast in honor of the exaltation of that Holy Cross, the symbol of his faith, the title of his religious order, and to exalt which he left country and home. f The upper one is called St. Joseph's Lake, and the lower St. Mary's. 20 TNIVEESITT OF until E"ovember, 1844. The N^ovitiate of the Brothers ^ was erected at the same time. The Chapel and I^ovitiate stood until the year 1858, when it was torn down and ; replaced by the present building, which for the past month or so has been occupied by the Professed Brothers. | The little Chapel was blessed on the 8th of December, 1844, under the title of the Most Holy and Immaculate ' Heart of Mary ; and on the same day the Archconfrater- ] nity, the oldest society of the students of Kotre Dame, was j established in this Chapel. Well do we remember how, ; some years later, the students used to crowd in this i quaint octagonal Chapel on Saturday mornings. May i the memory of such mornings recall to a sense of their ! duty to God and themselves any Catholic, now well on in ] years, who may have forgotten the practice of his relig- j ious duties ! 5 It was in that modest, retired chapel that the whole i community of l^otre Dame assembled in times of joy i to thank God, and in times of sadness and grief to beg j His aid. In 1847, on the 19th of March, it was enriched ^ with the precious body of St. Severa, virgin and martyr, I given to the Chapel by Bishop Hailandiere, on his return i from Kome in 1845. There, also, the Community hon- i ored the most sacred Passion and Death of Our Lord, 1 by making the Way of the Cross, which was erected in [ that Chapel the 14th of March, 1845, the first erected at | ITotre Dame. In it the devotion of the Forty Hours | was first made by the community and students. In it NOTKE DAME. 21 the Archbishop — then Bishop — of Cincinnati, the Bish- ops of Milwaukee and Detroit, said Mass with evident delight. Mrs. B jerley furnished it with a beautiful carpet, and Bro. Francis Xavier taxed his taste and skill to the uttermost to adorn the sanctuary. It moves even such cold hearts as ours is to listen to good Brother Vincent and other of the more ancient Brothers recount the glo- ries of that dear little Chapel. It is now of the past — but not forgotten. The Chapel of the Portiuncula, with its many privileges, has supplanted it on the "Island." Loretto, wdth all its charming grace of archi- tecture and wealth of perfect taste in its decorations, surpasses it; but, like the Israelites on beholding the new Temple and sighing for the old, all those who ever had the privilege of praying in that dear secluded sanc- tuary, remember it with affectionate regret. Some years later, we remember well, it was a delight to the stu- dents, some of whom were not overstocked with piety, to visit that Chapel, and to assemble around the statue that was afterwards erected in front of the Kovitiate. In the month of May all would congregate there, and though the attention of some of the wilder "boys" may have been at times distracted by the frogs croaking in the neighboring lakes, the birds chirping in the trees alongside, and the little chipmonks, and cats that would sometimes intrude sans ceremonie upon the solemn scene, — much to the joy of the aforesaid "boys," who 22 UNIVERSITY OF were always on the lookout for something to laugh at, — yet we doubt not that even those scapegraces profited by the excellent short discourses that were then given by Fathers Sorin, Granger and Cointet, and occasionally by priests visiting the institution ; that real piety and solid virtues for after-life were acquired by a discipline of which visits to this Chapel formed a part, is shown by the many good citizens of these United States who were then careless lads, in the group around the statue. If those youngsters profited by the Devotions in spite of their proclivity to take advantage and enjoy any by-play or contre-temjps \k\2X are unavoidable in outdoor exer- cises, the more serious must have reaped a still more abundant harvest of grace. But let us take events in their chronological order, and not allow our partiality to the little Chapel on the Island to draw us away from the straight line of histor- ical rectitude. Having erected the College building, or as much of the plan as was deemed necessary at the time, and or- ganized the religious community of priests and brothers with the members then residing at [N'otre Dame, Father Sorin, with that prudence and foresight that have been his distinguishing qualities, set about laying the true foundation, not only of his establishment of Notre Dame, but of his Order of Holy Cross in America. The So- ciety of Holy Cross, of which he was one of the very first members, had been established some years before NOTRE DAME. 23 in France. Its object was to give missions and re- treats, to teach in colleges and schools, and to instruct young lads in trades. Its members were of two classes — ^priests and lay-brothers. As soon, therefore, as Father Sorin had built the Col- lege, to fuliill the terms of the contract he had made with the Ordinary of the diocese, he began to provide for a ]N"ovitiate, in which men were to be formed to the religious Hfe, imbued with the same zeal he had for the glory of God and the welfare of their neighbors. The ^^Tovitiate and Chapel were built, as we have already mentioned, on the little mound between the two lakelets, which was once upon a time a real island.* Though the community then, as now, had not a big bal- ance to their credit in their bank account, yet the put- ting up of the material building was the easiest part of making a I^ovitiate ; and this most important part of Kotre Dame had to go through all the vicissitudes of for- tune, to which all religious communities in a new coun- try are subjected. The friends of Xotre Dame know, and we here mention for the benefit of the general reader, that in the Catholic Church Religious Orders have always been held in high esteem, and have been encouraged in all ages, from the very beginning. The * It has always been known familiarly as The Island ; and in the Annals of Notre Dame is named St. Mary's, in honor of the Blessed Virgla, 24: UNIVERSITY OF good they have done for religion, for education, for the arts, — ^in a word, for the civilization of nations, — need not be commented upon here. Consult Montelambert and history, passim. The members of religious orders, after making a Novitiate or trial of one or more years, consecrate themselves to the service of God by three vows — of poverty, chastity and obedience ; making thus a triple renunciation of worldly goods, of worldly pleasures, and of their own will, — and are enabled to multiply a hundred-fold their means of doing good to their neighbors, by the union of their individual efforts directed by one will. It is unnecessary to take up our space in pointing out the advantages accruing to Educational Institutions car- ried on by religious orders : one great advantage, among others, is so patent that we need only touch it with our finger. It is, that the success of the Institution does not depend on any one man, who may die any day, but upon the Order, which does not die — and consequently a change of men does not necessitate a change in the policy, or the spirit, of the Institution ; since whatever may be the difference of character, talent, and other personal qualities of the outgoing and incoming men, their general training, as well as their moving spirit and special object, is the same. Notre Dame has all the advantages to be had from religious orders ; and to maintain those advantages, the greatest care is taken of the ]^ovitiates, — in which the NOTRE DAME. 25 raw material, coming from out the world, is moulded, and men of various nations, characters and degrees, are formed to the religious state, are taught that the great aim of man on earth is to save his own soul bj helping others to save theirs, and thus doing all in his power to serve God. But though the advantages resulting from religious orders are great, though the life of abnegation religious must lead is the best when viewed from the stand-point of faith, it is easily perceived that to the natural man, to one who seeks his own ease, his own ways, it is not a life extremely attractive. A holy Doctor of the Church, commenting on the texts of the New Testament in which Our Blessed Redeemer says that his followers must renounce not only the goods of the world and its pleasures, but also themselves^ makes the remark that shows he knew the human heart very well, and that the men of his day were pretty much like the Americans of the present. St. Gregory, we think it is, remarks that it is comparatively an easy task to give up the goods of the world — Pagan Philosophers, enlightened only by reason, have had the good sense to see that it was not worthy the heart of man to devote his whole time to the acquisition of wealth, — and still less worthy to give himself up to pleasure ; and men generally can understand and applaud those who, for a good motive, disdain riches and pleasures. But, St. Gregory adds, it is really a difficult thing for a man to give up himself; 26 UNIVERSITY OF I ! it is one of the roughest roads to travel a man can find, • to place himself voluntarily under the will of another man. ! ^N'ow these, difficult things are required of religious. ; Here in the United States, where the "Almighty Dollar" I was the acknow^ledged divinity until greenbacks made ] gold and silver hide their diminished quantity, and where now the 5-20's, the Y-30's, and other bonds, keep men ; in the same bondage that the real gold did, and where ] greenbacks and the " stamps," with their pretty pictures ^ and portraits of great men, seem to please as much as | did the eagle and goddess of liberty when seen graven j on silver quarters, — it is no easy matter for a young man ' to give up his chance of making a fortune, of being a j Merchant Prince or a Eailroad King. JSTor is it an easy '< matter in this world of movement, of ambition and wire- ] pulling, w^here divorce is one of the great institutions of , the country, and Salt Lake the last expression of the ad- ^ vanced men of this progressive age, to give up all hope i of becoming President of the United States, Governor, • ; or Consul to the Feejee Islands, and to renounce the i sensation of the divorce court, not to mention other j pleasures, which, if not held in such universal public I esteem, are none the less prevalent and perhaps more \ attractive to a vast majority of young men, who, as a J general thing, judge things as they seem and not as they j are. Still, we agree with the saintly Doctor aforesaid, j it is particularly hard in this land, w^here true liberty is ' NOTRE DAME. 27 not SO much tlionght of as license, and where every man thinks himself as good as any other man, and a " blamed sight " better, for a man to give up his will. Hence, we said that the building of the house of the Novitiate was the easiest part of the business that Father Sorin undertook and carried through, as he did everything he put his hand to. The difficulty was to get subjects ; to get young men in this money-making, pleasure-seeking, every-man- for-himself world, to make the vows of j)overty, chastity and obedience. It need not be a subject of wonder that but few present themselves, and that of the few, fewer still persevere. But there is another side of the medal; there are always to be found men in this good natured, motley world, who recognize they have a soul, that other men have souls, that there are souls to be saved, that there are aspirations of the human heart that cannot be satis- fied by mere wealth and pleasure ; there are men who act from supernatural motives, who feel that God alone can satisfy the intense longings of the heart for happi- ness, and that this happiness is to be fully realized only by union with God in Heaven, after serving Him faith- fully on earth. And these men are found in all classes of society, the well educated, the talented, the illiterate, the ignorant, the wise and the foolish. It was to give an opportunity to all to realize these great aspirations of the soul, that Father Sorin opened 2b UNIVERSITY OF two I^ovitiates, one for those destined for the priesthood, the other for lay brothers, whether devoted to teaching in colleges and schools, or to manual labor and teaching trades to young boys. The Brothers' Novitiate was first established on the Island, the dearest, pleasantest, most secluded spot of ITotre Dame. In 1845, Father Granger opened the Novitiate on the Island and remained until 1847, when he went to Indianapolis. After a brief sojourn in that city, Father Granger with his novices took possession of the house on the Island. At this time, Father Cointet, who had made his Ko vitiate under Father Granger, was Master of Novices for the Priests, who, as yet, had no separate house, but who occupied separate apart- ments in the college building. In the course of time, about 1852-3, the number of applicants for the priest- hood having greatly increased, their novitiate was placed on the Island, and the Brothers were removed to anotlier building. The novices destined for the priesthood remained on the Island until 1853, in which year Father Granger, with his own hand, cut down the thick under- brush on the spot where the St. Aloysius Novitiate now stands. We could give many interesting details of these happy times, when poverty had to be observed nolens volens^ and when obedience was considered by the fervent Novices much easier than to have their own way, so attractive was it made by Father Granger, who NOTKE DAME. 29 remained Master of ]N'ovices until he was made Prefect of Eeligion at the College, and soon after Provincial, The xs'ovice Brothers for many years had Father Letour- neau to direct them in the way they should go ; he was assisted, at times, by Bro. Auguste, and at others, by Bro. Yincent, who, in the beginning, was Master of ]S"oYices himself, and who now, in his venerable old age, continues to be Director of the l^ovitiate in the new edifice now occupied by the ]^ovice Brothers. May God grant him many years to edify the young generation of Brothers, and to show them, by example, what a true Religious is ! Speaking of Bro. Yincent, reminds us that we should go back again to the year 1844, where we left the College building just up. We really forget whether we put it under roof and put a steeple on it. It was under roof. E'ot one of your new fangled French roofs, with slate and gravel and pitch and all the modern improvements, but a good old-fashioned peaked roof, with shingles on — oak shingles at that, which turned up and warped beau- tifully in the sun, and thus ventilated the attic. They had no steam then ; there wasn't even any talk about a railroad through South Bend — and they used flat-bands of iron for rails on the embryo Michigan Central Road, which, at that time had slowly made its way from Detroit as far as Marshall ; and which, besides occasionally throw- ing off the train in creeks and down embankments, used to poke "snakes" at the passengers, up through the cars. 30 UNIVEESITT OF All ! those were jolly days to travel in ; any train then could beat a trotting horse, not only in speed, but in shaking you up. But I digress. They had no steam in the College then, but after nearly freezing all the students and professors to death with hot air furnaces, through the first winter, and then well nigh making a big bonfire of the College, toward Spring, concentrating in one half hour the caloric that would have kept the building com- fortable, if judiciously spread, through the winter days and nights, they fell back on stoves in which wood was burned. That mode of heating continued until 1863, when the present efiicient steam heating apparatus was successfully introduced. Bells have always been a favorite mode of making a noise at IN^otre Dame. In these primitive days — we con- tinually revert to the year 1844 — ^the reader must con- sider that we have our head-quarters in the College in that year, and that we have not commenced the regular march of our history down to the present time ; the brief notice we occasionally make of the present time, may be likened to speedy excursions on a bycycle — we make only one track and that a narrow one. In these primitive days there was a fine toned bell in the college steeple where it did service, especially on two occasions, when it alarmed the neighborhood and woke up the sleeping community to extinguish the flames in which, without the bell, the College would have been enveloped. When the Church was built, Mr. Gregory Campau con- NOTRE DAME. 31 structecl a "beautiful belfry on it, over the Sanctuary, and put this bell in the belfry. There it rang out as merry as any marriage bell until one stormy clay in March, it may have been April— for the winds get very much mixed up in this region of country and are no respecters of months ; it has all along, since the flood at least, been a matter of grievance that it is not known whence they come or whither they go ; but here is added the further grievance that it isn't known when they are going to come. On this day of March, or April, the wind blew the belfry down, and the bell came along with it, and now rings in the belfry of the Convent of St. Mary's. Talk- ing of bells, we will exhaust the subject, as far as Notre Dame is concerned, by briefly stating that the original bell, just mentioned, was succeeded by a large one of 2400 pounds, which hung high up in the steeple, solitary and alone, making deliciously loud solos, until 1856, at which memorable epoch it was enlivened by the arrival of the peal of twenty-three bells, which will play you any air you want, or at least any tune you will go to the trouble of putting on the cylinder. The big bell not liking, perhaps, the continual clatter of so many smaller ones, or else because it was knocked around too roughly, cracked in disgust, and was sold for bell metal. The legitimate successor of that bell — the third, consequently, of the family of bells — is the one which sounds forth from the tower in front of the church — a tower that has gained the admiration of the beholder, rather by its 32 UNIVERSITY OF sturdy solidity than by its pretentions to architectural beauty. This bell, with the yoke, weighs over seven tons, and is larger than any other bell — whether church bell or any other kind of bell, in the United States. It was cast by the celebrated bell-founder, Mr Bollee, of Mans, France, Returning again to 1844 we will now leisurely come down year by year to the present time. The farm was an object of peculiar interest to the community of Notre Dame. Among the first buildings, the barn, which still stands, was put up, and eighty acres of land was cleared the first year, and the approach to the College was ren- dered more picturesque than beautiful by the girdled trees that stood like big scare crows in the fields.* The Manual Labor School, as well as the College, was chartered in 1844. On account of the land being so encumbered with timber, and the small number of men, the College, Manual Labor School and Shops were grouped together too closely. Brother Francis Xavier's carpenter and joiner shop was the first established — * These were gradually cut down and when the stumps decayed it was one of the sights of the neighborhood to witness the gigantic stump eradicator cleaning the fields. If any one doubts our veracity on the stump question, we point, for our triumphant vindication, to those venerable relics that ornament the fence corners, and make a contrast with the thriving hedges along the Avenue in front of tho College. NOTRE DAME. 33 Brother Benoit soon followed with his locksmith shop, and therein made some of the most wonderful locks and keys our youthful eyes ever rested upon ; then the shoe shop, the tailor shop, and others followed in succession, not all springing up at once, but by degrees as their want was felt, or as men able to conduct them presented themselves. The inner life of the College is given in another sec- tion, but we cannot refrain from saying something of it as it was at this time. Students of the College and of the Industrial School were tooretherin recreations, and the latter came into the College study room, after work in the evening — all told, they did not muster a hundred strong. The study room was in the basement of the central building, occupying about one-fourth of it — the wings were not then built. As we have mentioned the first arrivals among the relig- ious, we think it just and proper to mention the first among the students, when we, a timid, bashful lad, first entered the study room, years ago. There was Father Letourneau, then a hard student, and we do believe he did not take his eyes off his book to look at us ; near him sat John Williams, and he took a good long stare at us, which we returned. The smiling face of Tom Wallin ; the half grim, half good humored countenance of poor Tom Lafontaine, the son of the Chief of the Miamas ; the meek suffering countenance of his cousin, Richard- ville, whom we followed to the grave a year after ; the 3 34: UK^IYERSITY OF handsome face of John Bracken, now concealed with hirsute covering, were the representative countenances of the first fifty students of J^otre Dame, the imme- diate successors of the first twenty or thirty others whom we did not know personally as students. Mr. Alexander Coquillard, of South Bend, was the first who entered. In those days. Brother Francis of Sales, an old warrior of the first Empire, held the post which has since been so long and efficiently occupied by Brother Benoit, whom he resembled both in strictness of discipline and partiality to snuif. The students took prodigious delight in long excur- sions on foot, and they scoured the fields far and wide, seeking what they might devour. Over hill and dale they would have roamed, had there been that variety in the surrounding country, — ^they made up for the loss of such pleasure, by trudging manfully through sandy roads and swampy prairies. A favorite mode of passing the day was to start out immediately after breakfast, carry- ing the main part of the dinner along with them, and trusting to the neighboring farmers for butter, eggs and milk, though the farmers rarely returned the compliment of trusting them; at other times they would give notice a week in advance, and then make a raid on some farm- house near by, and soon demolish the chickens, hot cakes, and pies and other dainty edibles, which, besides being somewhat more toothsome than the College com- mons, tasted fifty per cent, better from the fact they had to NOTRE DAME. 35 be paid for ; just as furtive puffs of contraband tobacco from short-stemmed pipes in College were more fragrant to their nostrils than the odor of the finest Habana any- where else, — because there it was strictly forbidden to smoke. The discipline of ]S"otre Dame has justly met with the approbation of all the friends of the Institution. At the bei>:innino:, the main features were the same as now ; for in regard to discipline, as for everything else connected with the Institution, Father Sorin gave the impulse and direction. Yet some changes have been made, and they began in the first years. It was natural that the whole system of French college discipline should at first be introduced, or at least that an attempt should be made. Yet in those early days the Founder of Kotre Dame quickly seized the peculiarities of Young America as dis- tinguished from Young France. We well remember the transition from the stringent measures required by the lively and giddy French boys to the broader liberty given to comparatively more sober and sedate Ameri- cans. Like a judicious man, who, instead of transplant- ing a tree to a strange soil and thereby running the risk of losing it, takes its most thriving branches and en- grafts them on a strong and thrifty tree of native growth, thus bettering both grafts and tree, especially the tree, Father Sorin did not impose the European sys- tem of discipline, but merely grafted on the system of the country those regulations w^hich perfected it, and 36 "CrNIVEESITY OF ] 1 made it bring forth good fruit instead of tlie bitter Dead [ Sea fruit that the unmodified American system too fre- i qnently produces. The most powerful human cause of Father Sorin's I singular success was his quick perception of the manners ! and ideas of his adopted country, and the happy facility ' with which he not only conformed to them, but actually , made them part and parcel of himself ; and while he re- j tained all the qualities of the Catholic priest and of the | French gentleman, he laid aside the prejudices of the for- | eigner, and seemed to take possession of the spirit of the j country with his oath on becoming a citizen. We have 1 all met with men who have been in this country for many j years, yet who are as much Frenchmen or Germans, or \ English, as they were the first day of their arrival, — '• nay, it seems that their prejudices in favor of their own- 1 country become more settled the longer they remain. \ Father Sorin was not of that class. ] It was his good judgment in this respect that perfected i the discipline of the College, and tempered the too free j and easy, and, in many cases, rude manners of American i youth, with the polished and elegant manners of France, ; without diminishing the open frankness and sincerity - which is an offset to American want of culture. ] The course of studies at !N"otre Dame was always com- plete, and the scholarship high. Father Cointet, the first Director of Studies, was not only a most accom- 1 plished gentleman, who won the respect and affectionate -j NOTRE DAME. 61 esteem of every one who became even only slightly acquainted with him, but was also a profound scholar, with broad views ; and, though Father Sorin was pre- vented by his many and fast-increasing cares, as his community grew more numerous, from acting directly on any one class of students or branch of studies, yet, as President of the College and of the Board of Trustees, his views were the leading ones in the reunions of the Faculty : and if now the corps of Professors is more nu- merous to meet the w^ants of the increased number of students, we consider we are paying them a compliment when we say they are worthy successors of Father Coin- tet. Father Shaw, Rev. Mr. Ivers, Brother Gatien, Pro- fessors Jones, O'Leary, and others of the earlier days. T\^liile Father Cointet gave the impulse to the study of classics, Bro. Gatien made his students enthusiastic on the subject of Mathematics, and Father Shaw, who was an eloquent speaker himself, fostered in the breasts of the numerous students of his class that love of debate and "holdino: forth" which seems natural to all American youths. Father Shaw it was who laid the foundation of the present Literary Societies, and afforded the first materi- als for the lively traditions of the Thespian and Dramatic Societies ; and Brother Basil shortly after took hold of the band and sounded the first notes of the Philharmonic Societies, which have since, under various names, re- 38 UNIVERSITY OF echoed, their notes every year with increasing vim and i!*weetness. About the same time — away back in the 4:0's — Pro- fessor Girac took charge of the College Choir, which he has conducted ever since, with the exception of a few years he spent in Chicago. We have already alluded to the Religious Societies, of which Father Granger was, and has ever been, the moving spirit — with this allusion we must be content, and hasten on to bring up our chronicle of events to the present time, stopping, however, long enough to state that though Father Sorin was ably as- sisted at this early epoch by such men as Father Cointet, Father Granger, and others whom we have mentioned, and others whom we have been obliged to pass over, though reluctantly, in silence, and though he has since had efficient aid from the same and others, yet in all things he was the master mind, he the guiding spirit. Up to the year 1848, the number of students steadily increased, the Industrial School was developed, the farm cleared and drained, the Novitiates sent forth new members, and that lively movement, indicative of youth and vigor, which still prevails at I^otre Dame, was evident in every department of the establishment. In 1848, Father Sorin was rejoiced by a visit from his old College mate and confrere, the Rev. Father Drouelle, now Provincial of France, then a young priest on his way to Guadaloupe. Father Drouelle still retains a lively remembrance of his travels over the "corduroy NOTKE DAME. 39 roads" between South Bend and Indianapolis, delights to recount for the benefit and amazement of his hearers, his haps and mishaps in America, and though his stay was short, he always speaks with kindly feeling of Ameri- cans, and when afterwards he resided for over twelve years in Rome, he never let slip an opportunity of doing a kind service to any one from America, on a visit to the Holy City. Before leaving I^otre Dame, Father Drouelle cele- brated the first High Mass in the new church, on the 12th of November. The church still stands, and though it has been enlarged, is now too small for the accommo- dation of the students and the congregation. AYe have reason to hope it will soon be replaced by a larger one, more in accordance with the other buildings around it. In 18tl:9, the shops and the kitchen were entirely de- stroyed by fire. It was quite a loss to the community ; but, far from being discouraged. Father Sorin took measures to have the frame building replaced by a brick one, the one which now stands behind the church. The year 1851 was one of great importance to jS^otre Dame : it was the year that the railroad was completed through the neighboring town of South Bend, and the Post-Ofiice was established at E'otre Dame. The wings of the College were added to the main building in 1853 — the College and the whole establishment at jSTotre Dame steadily prospered until 1854. The cholera had ravaged many parts of the United 40 UNIYEESITY OF States, and the danger seemed passed away, when, in the summer of 1854, many of the inmates of Notre Dame were attacked. Among those taken away was. Rev. Father Cointet: his health had been completely shaken by a residence of some years in 'New Orleans, where obedience had placed him at the head of an Orphan Asylum conducted by the Congregation of Holy Cross : he had returned in the spring of '54, and his at- tendance on the extensive missions around I^otre Dame had improved his general health ; still he was not strong enough to resist the attack of disease, and in the month of September passed away from the scene of his labors, regretted by all, and by no one so much as by the Founder of Notre Dame. His loss, humanly speaking, was irreparable, and when added to the loss of Eev. Father Curly, a zealous young priest ordained the year before, and of some twenty other members of the com- munity, and to pecuniary difficulties, seemed to threaten Notre Dame with utter destruction. The clouds were lowering, truly. In September the students returned, and Professors were not yet recovered from the attack ; for though over twenty died, yet many more, we might say all, were taken down by the disease, and were suffer- ing from its effects. The College had been a hospital for the sick — ^it had to be renovated from top to bottom ; the work usually done in vacation-time was all on the hands of the few Avho could manage to crawl around. Another source of anxiety still remained, though for NOTRE DAME. 4:1 years efforts had been made to remove it : we mean the marshy ground between the two lakelets, which, in the opinion of all, was the cause of much sickness. Owing to a misunderstanding with the gentleman who owned the property between the lakes and the river, and who could consequently dam the water of the lakes, the land between them could not be drained; — to all this we must add embarrassments in money matters, the erection of new building having eiitailed a debt that might have been easily met in ordinary circumstances, but which now weighed heavily on the decimated and languishing community. But Father Sorin never lost his confidence in God — never for a moment doubted the protection of the Mother of the Redeemer, to whom Kotre Dame is specially ded- icated. His confidence was repaid. The summer of '54 was the dark moment before the dawn of a new and more flourishing era for ]N"otre Dame. The gentleman who had so long refused to sell his land, or to accommo- date Kotre Dame by allowing the water of the lakes to be lowered, offered to sell his land at much more reason- able terms than had been proposed to him. The land was bought, the lake was lowered, much to the improve- ment of the health of the establishment. Another advan- tage obtained, but not appreciated at the time, was the site on which St. Mary's Academy has since been erected. Kind and liberal friends came forward, among whom 42 UNIVERSITY OF Mr. and Mrs. Phelan, of Lancaster, Ohio, are remem- bered as two of the most generous benefactors of Kotre Dame. May thej receive in heaven the reward of their good works ! Our space is ahnost taken up, and we hastily glance at the remaining years. In 1856, the celebrated chimes were put up in the belfry of the church, and were sol- emnly blessed in ]!!^ovember before a large concourse of friends. Archbishop Purcell and Bishop Henni were present. The Most Rev. Archbishop delivered an elo- quent discourse, that is still remembered with admira- tion by the many who heard him that day. The sermon of Bishop Henni was also remarkable for its eloquence. In 1857, the Congregation of Holy Cross, its Consti- tutions and Rules, received the highest sanction of the Church, being approved by the Holy Father on the 13th of May of this year. In 1858, the northern part of Indiana was erected into a separate diocese, and Rt. Rev. John Henry Lners made first Bishop of Fort Wayne. The Rt. Rev. Bishop, soon after his ordination, visited ISTotre Dame, much to the delight of the students and the edification of all. In 1861, the Rt. Rev. Prelate laid the corner-stone of the Missionary's Home — the main building is now com- pleted, and temporarily occupied by the Kovice of Holy Cross. In the -year 1855 the Academy of St. Mary's, which, NOTEE DAME. 43 as well as ITotre Dame University, acknowledges Father Sorin as its Founder, was removed from Bertrand to its present delightful position on the banks of the St. Joseph River, a little more than a mile west of the College. JSTotre Dame and St. Mary's did their full share during the war : the Priests as Chaplains, the Sisters as nurses in the hospitals. It would take a separate volume to do justice to the part taken by the two institutions during this time. In 1865, Father Sorin put into execution a design he had long thought over : — ^it was, to establish a paper in honor of the Blessed Yirgin, — one in which the virtues and privileges of the Mother of God should be set forth in their proper light ; and the devotion to her not only defended against the attacks of ignorance and malice, but rendered more attractive to the vast number of Catholics in the United States. Though he receiv^ed no encouragement, — indeed, despite the discouraging advice of his friends, — Father Sorin began the publication of the Ave Maria in the month of May ; and though, like most of Catholic papers, it is no great pecuniary success, the number of devoted friends it has raised up, the nu- merous contributors who write for it, and the list of sub- scribers, show that Father Sorin was not wrong in thinking that devotion to the Blessed Yirgin was much more deeply rooted in the hearts of American Catholics than was thought to be the case even by acute observers. The approbation of the Holy Father, and of many of 44 rjsriYERSiTY of the Most Rev. Bishops and Archbishops of the United States and of other countries, has encouraged Father Sorin to continue with unflagging zeal his efforts to make the Ave Maeia one of the most welcome visitors to every Catholic family of the United States. In the same year, Father Sorin, then aided in the government of the Congregation of Holy Cross by Rev. Patrick Dillon as President of the College, determined to enlarge the College buildings, which then, after twenty-one years, were altogether too small for the in- creasing number of students. The old College building was unroofed in June, and by the month of September the present magniflcent structure was under roof. On the 31st of May, 1866, took place the largest gath- ering of the friends of I^otre Dame that has ever been seen on the College premises. It was on the occasion of the blessing of the colossal statue which stands over the dome of the College. Most Pev. Dr. Spalding, Archbishop of Baltimore ; Bishop Luers, of Fort Wayne ; Bishop Henni, of Milwaukee ; Bishop Pappe, of Cleve- land ; Bishop Timon, of Buffalo ; Bishop Grace, of St. Paul, by their presence showed the interest they took in the institution, and their devotion to the Mother of God. A full account of this day, with the sermons and essays, both in prose and poetry, is given in the Ave Maria, Vol. II. Since then, Notre Dame has held its own : Father NOTEE DAME. 45 Granger, Provincial, governs the Order in the United States with that prudence and discretion for which he has alAvays been remarkable. Father Corbj, as President of the College, aided by the efficient concurrence of his chief officers, Father Lemonnier, Director of Studies, and Father Spillard, Prefect of Discipline ; by the zealous co-operation of the Professors, most of whom were, "once upon a time," students of the College in which thej now till professorial chairs, and by the cool heads and ready pens of Brothers Edward and Gabriel in the Steward's Departments, and Brother Francis De Sales as Procurator, maintains the College of ISTotre Dame in its old standing among the best educational establishments of the country. Brother Eugene, the Chief of the Industrial School, has made the young men of his department experts in the various trades and good Christians. Kev. Father Pietrobaptista, at the Priests' novitiate, and Brother Yincent, in the novitiate of the Brothers, keep up the traditions of the self-sacrificing days of yore — of twenty-five years ago — ■ quite an age for this country — and instruct young men in the religious life, ^eed we add that the farm, with Brother Lawrence and Brother Paulinus as directors, brings forth fruit as well as the College and Industrial School and Xovitiates ? The last event we have the pleasure to record is the return of Yery Rev. Father Sorin to Notre Dame from France, where he had been obliged to remain since last 46 UKIY1&RSITY OF ^November by his new duties as Superior-General of tbe Congregation of Holy Cross. He arrived at ITotre Dame on the 22d of May, amid the rejoicing of all his friends. On reading over this short sketch of JN^otre Dame, we see we have not given an adequate idea of the struggles through which it, like most of Catholic institutions, has had to pass ; nor, indeed, have we wished to narrate them in full as they actually took place — they are mat- ters for future history, to be told when those who took an active part in them shall have passed away. May I^otre Dame long enjoy the presence of its founder, the Yery Rev. Father Sorin ! ^\t ^nivtxuii^. Thus far we have spoken only of the exterior of ^otre Dame, and however connected and bound up with some of the most pleasing reminiscences of our past life that may be, however vividly the outward form and linea- ments of Alma Mater may excite in our hearts senti- ments of gratitude and filial devotion, yet it is after all the interioi- spirit, the animating atmosphere of the place that has made it what it is to us. And this living and animating spirit is shown chiefly in the workings of the system of study and discipline which has been steadily tending onward at IS^otre Dame. We shall divide our sub- ject into several heads, as : 1st, Study; 2nd, Discipline; 3d, Amusements ; 4th, Religious, Literary and Other Societies, and 5th, The Library and Museum. STUDY. That the chief duty of a student, as a student, is to study ^ has been the principle on which the whole system 48 UNIVEESITY OF of college life at Notre Dame has been organized. The hours of stndy have always made a thorough day's work ; at present they take up ten and three-quarter hours out of every twenty-four, but so arranged that two consecu- tive hours is the longest single period without the inter- mission of recreation. This protracted attention to books, thus alternating with recreation, is not found to have any bad effect on the health. On the contrary, the regularity of life, the simplicity of diet, the removal of too engross- ing or otherwise noxious forms of excitement is found eminently adapted to conduce to the formation of the mens saiia in corpore sano. The endless variety of studies, also, which perplexes the mind of the student at some of our popular houses of education, keeping him in a continual state of mental vicissitude, by assigning certain branches to certain days of the week, and expect- ing him to get a smattering of all the " ' ologies" in an incredibly short space of time — all this is unknown at Notre Dame. The student has a few solid branches assigned to him at the beginning of the session, and through these he pursues a steady course till they are finished, attending class in each and reciting every day. By this, it has been found that a much more lively inter- est in study is excited, and a solid taste formed for liter- ature and science. By the testimony of numberless students and their parents and relatives, the facilities offered at Notre Dame for accomplishing much in a short time, are unrivalled. NOTRE DAME. 49 The college course, either in literature or science, requires four years, as is usual in America. To these two years in the Preparatory Department being added, a total period of six years for the completion of a good education is assigned, and would occupy the time of a youth from his twelfth to his eighteenth year. This is none too long when it is considered that the Preparatory Department begins at the very vestibule, as it were, of learning, and supposes notliing pre-existing but a moder- ate proficiency in reading, writing, spelling, and the elements of figuring. The secluded, peaceful and regular life pursued during these valuable years, is well known to exercise an excellent influence on tlie young man's future career. Science, in modern courses of study is tending to claim an undue attention, to the prejudice of classic literature. TVe say " undue " although aware that we are setting ourselves somewhat against the tide of public opinion. The Sciences, with the exception of Mathe- matics, afford but little mental discipline, and open the mind to no knowledge of human nature and social duties. They are rather adapted to be recreations of mature years than the occupation of youth, when the mind must be strengthened by continual exercise in overcoming the difficulties of the classic languages. Greek and Latin, if not studied when young, can rarely be mastered at all, while Ornithology or Geology, to those who have a taste for it, is as easy and pleasant a study at fifty as at fifteen. 4 60 UNIVERSITY OF A man who has borne himself well through the battle of life and whose declining years can be spent in leisure, may fitly devote himself to the peaceful study and con- templation of the works of the Creator — ^the habits of birds and beasts, the growth of plants and the crystaliza- tion of minerals. But for those who are preparing for the struggle, in the precious time of youth, severer stud- ies must form the groundwork of education. We except, of course, those whom Divine Providenee, having given to them a peculiar aptitude for scientific pursuits, evi- dently designs to be the engineers, the chemists, or the natural philosophers of the coming generations. For such, ISTotre Dame has prepared a thorough scientific course, completed in the same time as the classical, and adapted to meet all the requirements of the age of science in which we live. But, at the same time she prefers the classical, and as much as in her lies, exhorts her children to the same preference. The study of the ISTatural Sciences under Catholic auspices is an inestimable privilege, when it is considered that these sciences have been so generally perverted to the purposes of infidelity during the past century and much of the present, ^otre Dame, however, possesses men who can show that the true testimony of nature is in favor of revealed religion — who can read the lan- guage of the rocks, of the trees, of the feathered race, and of the eternal stars of heaven, all in proof of the NOTKE DAME. 61 existence of the God who made them, and of the truths that He has taught us by His Divine Son. The vast number of young men who are preparing them- selves for commercial pursuits in the West of America are not left unprovided for. A commercial course on the modern plan was early organized here, and dates previous even to the scientific. Care is always taken in awarding diplomas, to secure not only scholarship but those sterling qualities of head and heart which make a man not simply a good bookkeeper but a good member of society. Thus a carelessness which has brought the diplomas of some Commercial Colleges into disrepute is unknown at Notre Dame. DISCIPLINE. The difficult matter of College discipline has always received special attention here. Notre Dame, while maintaining a system of strict military discipline, and never overlooking an oifence against her rules, has yet endeavored to exhibit the suaviter in modo in her method of dealing with transgressors. Expulsion, the extreme punishment of College laws, is only resorted to where the presence of the transgressor is found to be hurtful to the best interests of the community. The principle of honor has been sedulously cultivated at Notre Dame, as a means of preserving good discip- 52 UNIVERSITY OF line, and as the propriety of this is very mucli ques- tioned, on the one hand, by those who think that motives of grace alone shonld be inculcated as a rule of action, and on the other hand by those who believe that honor is a mere bubble, even when compared with other worldly advantages, such as wealth or pleasure, it may be well to explain our position in this connection. At the bottom of the human heart there lie three sel- fish motives of action : the love of money, the love of pleasure, and the love of honor. These are not only immeasurably valueless as compared with the motives of grace but are even inferior to such human motives as are not selfish, as the natural love we have for parents, gratitude for benefactors, compassion for the needy, patriotism and general benevolence. But since man is a creature of mixed motives, and since every one of his actions is the result of a great complexity of motives, it is important to know the relative value even of the purely selfish motives, to teach us in matters otherwise indifferent whether honor is to be preferred to wealth, or wealth to honor or pleasure. This is especially impor- tant at the present day, when so many works on Political Economy are written and read, wherein the love of money is spoken of as the mainspring (and even the desirable mainspring) of all human actions. Now, what we maintan is, that honor, though justly considered a mere bubble in comparison with virtue and eternal happiness, is not so in comparison with wealth or NOTRE DAME. 53 pleasure, and that the man who sacriiices weaUh or pleasure to honor, acts not foolishly ; and we claim also that it is important to inculcate this in an age and coun- try where the love of money, the basest of all selfish motives, is so predominant. That the love of money is baser than the love of pleasure is e\ddent from the universal contempt and dis- gust which is felt for the character of the miser who deprives himself of the luxuries and conveniences of life for the sake of hoarding money. If this self-denial were practised from the love of God and the desire of perfec- tion, we should reverence it. If it were called for by some motives of honor, (as when a man practices self- denial in order to enable himself to pay the debts of his relatives and restore the good name of the family) we admire it. But if practised for the . mere love of money, we reprobate and despise it. We say to the miser : " You ouglit to indulge in the lawful pleasures of life. You ought to allow yourself the comforts of old aoje. We condemn you as a miser for doing what we should admire if done for any other motive." Whence, it is apparent that the love of money is baser even than the love of pleasure, and in fact the basest of all selfish motives of action. Education cannot give divine grace ; but it may dis- pose nature to the better reception of grace. IS'ature is the foundation, grace the spiritual edifice ; and the duty of education is to fi-ee the foundation from the encum- 54: TimVERSITY OF bering rubbish which might render the superstructure insecure, to arrange those courses of masonry which may have been subverted, even in the foundation, placing the love of money lowest of all and pounding it down out of sight, if not out of mind, then in successive layers, the love of pleasure, the love of honor, the natural vir- tues, industry, sobriety, amiability, gratitude, patriotism, truth and honesty. And then when the Divine Spirit vouchsafes to commence the spiritual superstructure of grace. He finds a solid foundation. Such is the reason why the love of honor and the natural virtues are so sed- ulously cultivated at ]N"otre Dame. The " new comer " at our College, by these means, is secured against those ill-mannered, and often really cruel jokes so frequently perpetrated at other institutions. He finds in his new comrades a society of brothers and true friends ; in his teachers and prefects, so many tender parents and anxious guardians. He feels at home at once, and undertakes his course of study with an untroubled mind. AMUSEMENTS. That youth would ever have to be encouraged to take part in healthful sports and recreations might have seemed incomprehensible to our ancestors and to the present generation in the Old World. But such is the state of NOTKE DAME. 55 mental activity in American youth that outdoor games are frequently neglected, and the mind is overworked to its own injury and that of the body. The authorities of Xotre Dame have, therefore, always especially fostered healthful recreations, as beneficial to both body and mind. The truly American game of base ball is engaged in here with great assiduity. Three clubs in the Senior Department, the " Enterprise," " Juanita," and " Star of the East," three in the Junior, the " Star of the AVest," " Excelsior," and " Young America," and two, the " Lib- erty " and the " Quickstep," in the Minim Department, comprise among their number all the devotees of the game, in which the greater portion of recreation hours is now occupied. Great emulation exists between the clubs, and match games are continually taking place. Before base ball became in vogue, an attempt was made to establish the game of cricket. A cricket club was formed, and lasted some three years, but this game does not appear to be so germane to the country as base ball. Sailing and rowing on the lakes have often been favor- ite summer exercises, and boating clubs have been formed for the purpose of carrying on the business systemat- ically. Fishing, in the proper season, also meets with consid- erable attention from those finnily inclined. As for hunt- ing, in the pigeon and duck season in the spring and fall, it is lively, but at other times the woods afford but little game. 66 UNIYERSITY OF Military exercises were always especially encouraged by Yery Rev. E. Sorin, while President qf the Univer- sity. A company was formed under the command ol W. F. Lynch, subsequently Brevet Brigadier General Lynch, who distinguished himself during the war for his energy and intrepidity. Our company, under the name of the Notre Dame Continental Cadets, wore the venera- ble and picturesque buff and blue uniform which Wash- ington and the heroes of the Revolution have hallowed. Many of our old students will remember this company, some as having belonged to it themselves, and all as having admired it as one of the chief ornaments of the College. In latter years the attention of the students of Xotre Dame has been drawn to other amusenients^ as the late war proved that military companies mean some- thing more than wearing a nice uniform and a strap on the shoulder. Gymnastic exercises are provided for by ample appa- ratus for the display and cultivation of muscle, and have always received a due share of attention ; but, probably, the form of amusement that has most constantly held its own at Notre Dame, is the game of hand-ball. We rarely see the alley without occupants. Ten-pins were rolled for about four or five successive years here, but were resorted to chiefly, when the weather was too bad to play out-of-doors. They have now fallen into disuse. Bathing and swimming in summer form rather a part of the regular disciplinary exercises than a mere amusement, being obligatory on all. Skating in winter NOTKE DAME. 57 is generally afforded on one or other of the lakes and somethnes both. The ancient and noble game of chess is not neglected at JS'otre Dame. It has generally constituted the recre- ation of certain members of the Faculty and the more intellectual among the students. Of late years a chess club has been fonned for its cultivation, presided over by Prof M. A. J. Baasen, A. M. Finally, veloGipedestrianism must wind up our list of this kind of amusements. As for such recreations as dramatic and musical entertainments, essays, debates, lectures, &c., in various departments of Literature and Science, the celebration of various festivals, whether of a religious or social nature, all these must be comprised under the caption of, EELIGIOUS, LITERAKY AISTD OTHER SOCIETIES. FIKST KELIGIOUS. The Arch-confraternity. — This is the oldest, and in every respect the most venerable Society in the College. The same tender devotion to the Blessed Virgin Mary which moved Yery Rev. Father Sorin to choose her as the Patroness of his greatest undertaking, the Univer- 58 UNIVERSITY OF sity itself, impelled him also to establish among the stu- dents, at as early a date as possible, the chief of her numerous confraternities. Accordingly, we find it dating from 184:5, one year after the College Charter. To pre- vent confusion, its active membership is confined to the Senior Department. The right to wear the badge of the society is claimed, however, by all old members, and we see many members of tlie College Faculty thus deco- rated on the festivals of the Church, and particularly during the month of May. It holds regular monthly meetings and possesses a good religious library. In other respects, the work of this society is less ostenta- tious than any other in the College. It is rarely repre- sented by public speakers, scarcely ever appears in print, and never engages in any of those forms of emulation which bring other bodies into notice. But visit the Col- lege Chapel on Saturday mornings at six o'clock and you will there see its members surrounding the throne of grace and beseiging it with their prayers for the conver- sion of sinners. That is their hidden work, which, when more ostentatious labors are shown to be mere whirls of empty bustle and noise, will advance to receive its glori- ous eternal reward. The Society of the Holy Angels, was organized in 1858 by Prof. J. A. Lyons, for the purpo&e of furnishing regular servers in the Sanctuary. On great festivals, the whole Society appears, bearing lights, during the NOTRE DAME. 59 canon of the mass and filling the Holy Place with their numbers. On other days, the members take turns in the exercise of their valued privilege. They have cho- sen the Holy Angels for their Patrons, because the office they perform on earth is similar to that which the blessed spirits perform in heaven, and because they aspire to perform it with the same fidelity and purity. It is restricted to the Junior and Minim Departments. The Holy Childhood, is a branch of the extensive and well known Society bearing that name and has been established among the Minims within the last three years. The Society of Our Lady of the Sacred Heart is the most modern of all our religious societies. It was established in the Junior' Department at the time when the new but already wide-spread devotion from which it takes its name, first reached l^otre Dame. By the zeal of Brother Florentius, the Juniors' Prefect, their whole study room has been turned into a beautiful chapel of Our Lady of the Sacred Heart, whose altar, at the upper end is brilliantly adorned with lights and flowers, especially on Her festivals and during the month of May. The Soci- ety shares in the Mass and Benediction celebrated for the Archconfraternity on Saturday mornings. The above are all the Peligious Societies at present existing among the students of [N^otre Dame. Old friends may remember the Nocturnal Adoration which 60 UNIVEESITT OF contiimed here a long time, and accomplished a great deal of good in its day. Those who ever knew that saintly young man, Phillip Carrol, now gone to his eternal reward, will not forget the little Rosary Society, formed by his zeal and piety. Many other such organizations there may have been here in times past, but if the mem- ory of them has departed from earth, it is safely laid up in heaven. SECOND LITEEAKT AND SCIENTIFIC. St. Aloysius Philodemio. — This is a new name for an old friend. It is a lineal descendant of the oldest liter- ary society in the house, founded in 1851, and although ,having since undergone various changes of name and locale^ always remaining under the patronage of that model of Catholic students, St. Aloysius, on whose festi- val, the 21st of June, they meet at a social banquet, wdth appropriate speeches, &c. All the graduates of l^otre Dame in the classical course, we believe without excep- tion, have belonged to this organization under one or other of its names : " St. Aloysius Literary " — " Acad- emy of Debate " — " Literary and Philo-historic," &c. Its weekly meetings are devoted to the reading of essays and the cultivation of forensic eloquence. It possesses an excellent library for reference and literary culture. The history of this institution is intimately connected with the intellectual life of the highest class of students NOTKE DAME. 61 at 'Notre Dame. Few there are of its old members whose fondest recollections do not cling around the So- ciety rooms and the friends they used to meet there. From the time when it met in the old College Library, under the Presidency of Fathers Gillespie, Kilroy, Dil- lon, Corby and Hallinan, and when McGean, Ferris, Corey, Flannigan, Carrol, Creighton, Collins, Naughton, Runnion, Howard, Healy, Fitzgibbon, John and Tom Lonergan, and Bigelow were wont to wax warm in the debate, — through more crowded times, when the old College was growing too small, and when the St. Aloy- sius' had to emigrate to a little partitioned-off corner of the Recreation Room; — through the troublous time, when Father Hallinan's kind interposition placed the Society again on its old footing; and finally up to the present, when under the direction of Father Lemonnier, and after- wards Father Spillard, it has fixed its local habitation in Ko. 11, and has given birth to its modern ofi'shoot — the talented " Two-penny Club," with their literary gazette, so racy and so rare ; — through all these times, we say, the old St. Aloysius has behaved itself like a gallant vessel, tossed by the winds and waves, but ever staunch and seaworthy. It has ever been the representative of the best social features of the Senior Department, and has reckoned among its members all the cream of College society. 62 UNIVERSITY OF St. Edward's Literary and Historic. — This literary society has now completed its third year, having been organized in 1866, by the zeal of Rev. M. B. Brown, SSC, under whose direction it still continues. Its mem- bers aim chiefly at elegance in English, and we notice that since the formation of the Scientific Course, its graduates have generally emanated from this Society. It is beginning to collect a good library, and prepares its members for the bar by legal discussions in very precise style. We believe this Society opens a field of healthy and generous rivalship with the St. Aloysius. The United Scientific Association. A union of the classes of Zoology, Botany, Geology and Mineralogy, l^atural Philosophy and Chemistry, and the Higher Mathematics, for the purpose of having scientific lec- tures and organizing exploring parties to ransack the mysteries of nature in the beautiful environs of the University, having been proposed in the Spring of 1868, the Society resulting from this union took the name of " United Scientific Association," with Rev. Father Car- rier as its Director. The labors of this gentleman in the collection of specimens for the College Museum were now seconded by a number of enthusiastic young men, and from its very commencement the U. S. A. became one of the most remarkable organizations in the Uni- versity. To secure a sufficient degree of schol- arships in those who applied for admission, it re- NOTRE DAME. 63 stricted its membership to students of the very highest grade, who could give satisfactory evidence of having pursued, with success, some one scientific pursuit at least, and of being devoted to the advancement of all. The Society has a good scientific library, receives several periodicals, and holds weekly meetings in its room, the Cabinet of Xatural History, for the hearing of scientific essays and debates. It also devotes itself to Zoological, Mineralogical and Botanical researches in the neighbor- hood of the University, the banks of the St. Joseph Eiver, the marshes at the sources of the Kankakee, and the numerous small j)rairies in which Indiana seems to endeavor to rival the neighboring State of Illinois, fur- nishing ample fields for investigation. The Society have also recourse to a Botanic Garden, lately formed by their Rev. Director, and stocked with a good variety of indigenous and foreign specimens. The Editorial Corps of the Scholastic Year was formed as a Society of students at the first issue of our little paper in 1867. Although the editorship has now passed into other hands, it may be as well here to notice I the origin, rise, and progress of the Scholastic Year. I In the good old days of yore, the students of ^otre I Dame had a semi-monthly publication called the ! "Progress," which rarely passed beyond the manuscript ' edition. Its origin is due to Messrs. F. C. Bigelow and I J. H. Fleming, and it was subsequently read publicly Q4: TJNIVEESITY OF before tlie students of the three departments on its day of issue, the reading being agreeably relieved by inter- ludes of music from the Band. Messrs. T. E. Howard, J. Collins, I^owlan, P. Carroll, J. M. Howard, Run- nion, Bigelow, D. M. M. Collins, O'Eeilly, Cottin and Tong were the most distinguished of the earlier ed- itors. This form of publication gave great satisfac- tion — ^the reading of the "Progress" was looked forward to as a sort of celebration ; but we often wished that the literary efforts of some of our talented fellow-students could be enjoyed by a wider circle. When we lost the chief patron of English literature in the person of Pev. Father Gillespie, whose religious obedience called him to .a foreign clime, the publication of the "Progress" was suspended, after having lasted several years, and College literary talent found no other vent than in such surreptitious publications as the " Olympic Gazette," the "Weekly Bee," and others of a less reputable char- acter. On Father Gillespie's return from France, he found a printing office at I^fotre Dame, established there by Yery Pev. E. Sorin, for the publication of that well- known Catholic periodical, the Ave Maria. Ever zeal- ous for the literary welfare of the students, he easily found means of procuring the issue of another paper from the same office, devoted to their interests, and to which the title of Scholastic Year was, after mature deliberation, given. It was founded September, 1867, and the editorial corps, formed of students, conducted it. KOTRE DAME. 65 Experience, however, showed that tlie editors of one week could not be made responsible for the editors of the previous one — that the Scholastic Yeae, to pre- serve its unity and identity, must be under one responsi- ble editor, and the Prefect of Studies (an office at that time filled by Rev. Father Lemonnier) the following year assumed the editorship ex officio^ assisted by a nu- merous corps of contributors. Under which constitution our little paper still remains. St. Cecilia Philomatheais-, — This Society is designed to embrace not only the literary, but also the elocution- ary, dramatic and musical talent of the Junior Colle- giate Department. It was first organized by Professor J. A. Lyons, in 1859, and is therefore one of the oldest societies in the College. Many of the names of its first members — Joseph Healy, George Mayers, T. B. Tallant, Frederick Butters, T. A, Daly, T. Sidley, John and ' James Carlin, James Kennedy, John Connolly, Douglas Cook, E. Barnes, Joseph Mukautz, Cassius Brelsford, 1 Hibbard Brothers, and others — are well known as old , students of the University, passing afterwards into the , Senior Department, and finally reaching the goal of j graduation. On Professor Lyons' withdrawal to St. I Mary's of the Lake, Chicago, then under the control of the Fathers of Holy Cross, the Society passed under other direction, and changed its original name of " Phil- omathean " to " Philopatrian." On Rev. Father Lem- onnier's installation as an officer of the Colleo:e, he 66 UNIVERSITY OF conceived the idea of forming a Field Band, among the members of the Junior Department. A number of Jun- iors were formed into a society, wore a red-and-blue Zouave uniform, and soon acquired great proficiency with their drums and other musical instruments. A dramatic ele- ment was next introduced, and on the restoration of Washington Hall to the purposes for which it was orig- inally designed, the St. Oecilians, as they were now called, were the first to appear on the stage. J. O'Con- nell, Thomas W. Ewing, Edward Wallin, James O'Reilly, James Graham, F. Guthrie, John Flanagan, Stephen King, C. Braunstein, William Freeman, George Dixon, (Father Lemonnier retaining his office of Di- rector,) were the most distinguished St. Oecilians of that day. Finally, within the last two years, the literary element was added, and the drums and Zouave Uniform dropped. The Society joined its old name of Philomathean with its new one of St. Oecilian, and returned to the protecting care of Prof. Lyons as Presi- dent. Their meeting-room, jN^o. 4, is the most stylish one in the house. They have weekly meetings, debates, essays, and moot courts. They appear on the stage on their patronal festival of St. Oecilia, and on other occa- sions during the year, choosing dramas of such a char- acter as tends to combine instruction with amusement. Other literary organizations have appeared at times in the College, and endured for longer or shorter periods. NOTRE DAME. 67 Third — Dramatic. The Thespian Society. — ^I^otre Dame has generally celebrated her Annual Commencement and several of her other festivals during the year with dramatic enter- tainments. Originally, the Prefect of Studies was accus- tomed to call upon the leading students of the house — in such numbers as he required — and assign them their parts in the drama to be played. The corps^ thus assem- bled together, formed a regular organization for the time being; the Director having supreme authority in all things, even in the election and exclusion of members. Thus the dramatic body passed through a long succes- sion of years, and produced many stars of the first mag- nitude. The names of Gillespie, McKeon, Collett, and McGean belono^ to the o:olden as^e of our drama. Then follow in succession those of O'Reilly, McXally, Peter Menard, Crowley, and Frank Cottin. Some of those gentlemen, who have since attained to high eccle- siastical dignities or social responsibilities, may smile to think of the triumphs of their younger days, as they find their names recorded here in this connec- tion. In the year 1861, Rev. Father Gillespie gave them a written Constitution and elective powers, as a regular Society, under the name of ''Thespian," the then existing members being Orville T. Chamberlain, Frank Cotton, T. IS^aughton, John Lonergan, Frank G. 68 UNIVERSITY OF Bigelow, J. H. Sclmtt, E. M. Brown, Tom E. Lonergan, J. A. Kelly, and some others. The names of M. T. Corby and T. A. Corcoran became famous at a later date. This had the effect of developing elocutionary talent to a greater extent than before, as those who were in other respects the leading students of the house, were not generally disposed to devote much of their attention to these exercises, and the members were now free to elect any of their fellow-students in whom they observed any peculiar dramatic talent. On the building of Washing- ton Hall, in the Spring of the same year, dramatic en- thusiasm received a new impulse, only interrupted when the great rush came to the University, and the Hall had to be used as a dormitory. The Thespian Society, after passing under the directorship of Rev. Fathers Gillespie and Patrick Dillon, and Professors McISTally and Ivors, is now directed by Professor M. T. Corby, and possesses some members of perhaps equal dramatic talent to those of days gone by. The Silver Jubilee Club, organized for the express purpose of celebrating the present year, is formed of the leading students of the house, and devotes itself to per- formances chiefly of a spectacular character. Its appear- ances have hitherto been crowned with undoubted suc- cess, which is likely to continue. notke dame. 69 Fourth — Musical. Music has always been a characteristic feature of jSTotre Dame, and many have been the organizations formed to cultivate it. Besides those Societies already mentioned, as the St. Cecilia Philomathean, into which music enters as one of the component elements, the following bodies are devoted to it exclusively, namely : The 'N. D. U. Corxet Band, — a very old institution, first formed by Rev. Father Gouesse, in 1816. This Rev. gentleman still tells a good story of the ludicrous consequences of their going out on the lakes, on a raft, to give a serenade on the water. We believe some of the original horns are at the bottom of the lake still. The Band afterwards passed under the leadership of Prof. Sotokase, Bro. Basil, Prof. Boyne of South Bend, and finally Prof. J. O'J^eill, under whom the number of its members has been very much increased. The Orchestra. — This important accompaniment to our dramatic performances has not been so uninterrupted in its history as the Band. Bro. Basil, Prof O'Xeill, and Prof. M. E. Girac have been successively its lead- ers. Prof. M. E. Girac's high reputation in the musical world makes it unnecessary to advert here to the pure classical taste which governs its performances. This distinguished scholar and musician has been connected with Notre Dame from a very early period, originally giving instruction in the classics, but subsequently de- 70 UNIYEESITT OF voting his attention exclusively to music. His talents for composition are continually exercised in the produc- tion of beautiful pieces of sacred music, which the choir of J^otre Dame have generally the honor of vocalizing for the first time. We owe several whole Masses, and numerous shorter pieces, to his genius. He sometimes enlivens our public entertainments with pieces of a less grave (though always of a noble and elevated) charac- ter, and is justly appreciated by the authorities of the house as one of the most valued treasures of the insti- tution. The Philhaemonic Society is devoted to vocal cul- ture, and is under the direction of Prof. M. T. Corby. It has given us some very pleasing concerts during the last two years. The Choir has at different times taken the form of a constitutional organization, but its component elements are of so diverse a nature — members of the College Faculty, Religious of the Holy Cross, students of all ages, and apprentices of the Manual Labor School — • that the vocal harmony which we hear without is not precisely indicative of the possibility of social equality within, a,nd therefore its elements are at present united in voice only. Prof. M. E. Girac is the present Di- rector. NOTKE DAME. 71 THE COLLEGE LIBEAKY AND MUSEUM. It contains 7,000 volumes, exclusive of the books con- tained in a great many special libraries in and about the Golleo^e, which would swell the total number to more than 10,000. Within the last two years valuable works have been procured. In a recent trip to Europe, the Librarian imported a large and valuable collection of standard works in ancient and modern languages, and in the various branches of ecclesiastical and profane science. As the Library was first formed by bringing together private libraries, obtained through donation or purchase, the fact cannot be concealed that a certain number of books are of little value. Yet, on the other hand, it is exceedingly rich in rare and standard works : for instance, it possesses no less than 17 different encyclopedias, namely: Rees', 42 vols ; MetropoUtana, 24 ; Londinensis, 25 ; Chambers' ; Catholique, 21 ; l!^ew American, 26 ; Britannica, 15 ; Theologique, 39, etc., etc. Cursus Corrb- pletus Scriptur(B Sacroe^ 28 vols. ; Cursus Completus Theologim^ 25 ; The complete works of all the Fathers of the Church, 145 ; The classical authors : Greek, Latin, French, English, German, Italian ; Five different Ecclesiastical Histories : Rohrbacker, 29 vols. ; Fleury, 30 ; Berault-Bercartel, 25 ; Darras, 4, and Cantu, 12, besides other smaller works on the same subject ; com- Y2 TJNIVEESITT OF plete sets of Brown son, the Dublin Review, JJniversite Oatholique^ etc. Among the old and rare works may be mentioned an Iliad of 1520, Basle; — a very fine and correct edition ; — A Tertnllian and St. Cyprian of about the same date ; — Ruins of Palenque ; — Mexico ; Historie cPAmerique^ etc., etc. In the Museum are to be found collections of birds and quadrupeds, stuffed, and lithographed in colors ; — of plants, both foreign and native ; 4,000 species and more than 10,000 specimens of the former, and upwards of 14,000 of the latter. Also, minerals and fossils, shells, eggs and nests, insects and reptiles. In addition to which, there may be seen Indian, Chinese, and other curiosities. More than 8,000 specimens have been col- lected by Rev. Father Carrier, the Curator of the Museum, himself, besides very many he has received from kind friends and correspondents. ;|[nlroHu(;torg to % Mjti[k3. The following sketches are necessarily incomplete, as the time given for their preparation was so short as to render it almost impossible to collect any material beyond the personal recollec- tions of persons at Notre Dame, and what the books of the University furnish. Yet so far as they go they are perfectly truth- ful. I have invariably preferred to leave a sketch imperfect and very short, rather than introduce any supposed or not well sup- ported facts. "Whenever the subject of a sketch was personally known to myself, I took the liberty to express my estimate of his abilities, and of his qualities generally ; in other cases I abstained from such an expression of opinion. With a sincere esteem for all the associated Alumni, I have guarded as far as possible against being influenced by personal liking, and stated plainly what I believed to be the strict truth, and I now present my sketches to the readers of this book, believing that they are correct, yet knowing their great imperfection and still hoping that all those concerned in them will be satisfied. |b l^^uhHi |l«m„i. PKESIDENTS OF THE UNIVERSITY. YERY KEY. E. SORIK Yerj Rev. E. Sorin, Founder and first President of the University of Notre Dame, deservedly ranks first among the Associated Alumni. As, however, his life has been so intimately connected with the University itself, we will not enter into details here, but refer the reader to the preceding pages. REY. P. DILLOK Rev. P. Dillon, second President of the University of Notre Dame, was born in the County Galway, Ireland, on the 1st of January, 1832. Immediately after his birth, he was dedicated in a special manner, by his Y6 TTNIVERSITT OF mother, to tlie service of God, and entered upon his studies for the sacred ministry, while yet a mere boy. After the removal of his family to America, he con- tinued his studies at St. Mary's College, Chicago, 111. He entered N^otre Dame in 1856 — completed his studies and was ordained priest in 1858. Even before his ordi- nation he was appointed Steward to the University, and gained the respect of all with whom he came in contact. He was subsequently appointed President of St. Mary's College, Chicago, and gave still further proof of his ad- ministrative talent. From St. Mary's he was recalled to ITotre Dame, where he discharged the important duties of Yice-President of the University and Principal of the Commercial Department, for nearly three years. In May, 1865, he was duly appointed President of the University and Local Superior at l^otre Dame. During his Presidency the College buildings were entirely re- modeled and enlarged, and improvements made to the value of nearly $100,000. In August, 1866, he was sum- moned to France to attend a General Chapter of the Con- gregation of Holy Cross, and, as his fame had preceded him, he was appointed Secretary and Assistant to the Superior General, the best evidence that could have been given of the esteem in which he was held by his religious associates. In August, 1868, he returned with Very Eev. Father Sorin, who had just been appointed Superior General of the Congregation, Filial duty, which at first appeared to require but a temporary absence, event- llcv. W"» Corby. S.S.(,. NOTEE DAME. Y7 nally rendered it necessary for him to seek a dispensa- tion from his obligations as a member of the Congrega- tion of Holy Cross, in order to attend more freely to the sacred duties which i^ature herself imposed upon him. The dispensation was given, though with much regret, by the Yery Rev. Superior General, and Father Dillon immediately assumed the responsibilities of Pastor of St. Patrick's Church, Chicago. But a disease, which had several times previously threatened his life, returned with renewed violence, and on Sunday evening, the 15th of [N'ovember, 1868, he breathed his last, regretted by all who knew him, and sincerely mourned by a wide circle of personal friends, among whom the students of 'Notre Dame, who had learned to respect and love him, rank next to his bereaved relatives. EEY. WILLIAM COEBY. Bev. W. Corby, the third who has occupied the posi- tion of President in the University of JS'otre Dame, was born at Detroit, in the State of Michigan, on the 2nd of October, in the year 1833. Up to the year 1849, the sixteenth of his age, he received all the educational ad- vantages afforded by the common schools of that time. From 1849 to 1853 he was occupied with his father in business, and during that time, under his father's expe- rienced training, laid the foundation of that self-control 78 ITNIVEESITY OF and forbearance, which have enabled him to fill his pres- ent onerous position, for three years, with honor to him- self and solid advantage to all his subordinates. In 1853 Father Corby was sent by his father to Kotre Dame, with two younger brothers, to continue their edu- cation. In 1854 (prompted by a desire to lead a more perfect life in the seclusion of some religious retreat), he entered the Congregation of Holy Cross, and prosecuted his studies with vigor, under the direction of experienced teachers, till 1858, when he made his religious profes- sion as a member of the Congregation, and wa? ap- pointed Prefect of Discipline in tlie University. In addition to the duties thus imposed upon him, he con- tinued to study theology with persevering energy till 1860, when he was raised to the dignity of the Priest- hood. He was then employed as a Professor in the University till July of the following year, when he was appointed Director of the Manual Labor School at I^otre Dame, with the additional duty of attending the mission of South Bend, at that time too small to have a resident pastor. Father Corby entered upon the discharge of this twofold duty with the same earnestness that he would have manifested, had he known that this would be his occupation for life. But he was called to quite a differ- ent field of usefulness. Chaplains were wanted for the army, and Father Corby, filled with the spirit of patri- otism as well as zeal for the spiritual welfare of his neighbor, offered himself as a volunteer for that post. NOTEE DAME. 79 In December, 1861, lie received from the Governor of the State of ]^ew York a commission as Chaplain in one of the ]^ew York regiments, with the rank of a cavalry officer. His regiment formed a part of the "Army of the Potomac," and Father Corby accompanied it through heat and cold, through storm and sunshine, through vic- tory and reverse, for three years, passing, during that time, through all the campaigns conducted respectively by Generals McClellan, Burnside, Hooker, Meade and Grant. At the close of the war. Father Corby returned to his little mission at South Bend, and finding the Congrega- tion in debt, contracted while building St. Patrick's Church, he went vigorously to work, and in a few months collected money enough, not only to free the Congrega- tion from liabilities, but also to erect a neat pastoral resi- dence close by the Church. This done, he was about to take some rest, and enjoy, with his little Congregation, the fruits of his zealous labors, when he was elected Yice-President and Director of the Studies in the Uni- versity. This new office he undertook with the same cheerfulness and determination that he had manifested on all previous occasions, and continued to discharge its duties till August, 1866, when he was raised to the po- sition which he still occupies, of President of the Uni- versity and Local Superior at ISTotre Dame. I have already said more in his favor than will meet mth Father Corby's approval, for true merit is always 80 UmVEESITT OF modest ; but trutli required that at least the small amount of praise contained in this very imperfect sketch, should be given. 'Nor would I consider my sketch complete, did I not add, that the mental and moral training which rendered Father Corby an earnest and docile religious, joined with the regular military dis- cipline which he witnessed during his three years in the army, has made him not only a good Superior, but also a popular President. VICE-PEESIDEISTTS OF THE UNIVER- SITY OF NOTRE DAME. YERY REY. A. GRANGER. Yery Rev. Alexis Granger, the first who occupied the position of Yice-President in the University of Notre Dame, was born at Daon, in France, on the 19th of June, 1817. He received his primary education at home, and even had made some progress in the study of Latin before his fifteenth year, the age at which he entered the College of Chateau Gontier. Here he remained for Rev. Aloxis GTangoi%S.S ( . NOTEE DAME. 81 G.Ye years, during which time, by diligence and the aid of superior talent, he completed his collegiate com-se. Father Granger entered the Theological Seminary at Mans, France, in his twentieth year, that is to say, im- mediately after the completion of his studies at the Col- lege. After four years of earnest application to the study of theology, he was admitted to Holy Orders on the 19th of December, 1810. For two years after his ordination. Father Granger was pastor of a congregation in the diocese of Mans, and, if we may judge by the zeal which he has always manifested for the spiritual welfare of others, since he has been at Notre Dame, his congregation lost a treas- ure when in October, 1813, two years after his ordina- tion, he entered the Congregation of Holy Cross, at Mans, where the Mother House of the Congregation was then located. After a short experience in the religious life, during which time he had proved him- self worthy the confidence of his Superiors, Father Granger was sent to J^otre Dame, in 1811, while this institution was yet in its infancy. Prompted by his natural friendship for Father Sorin^ his former fellow- student and the companion of his youth, but still more by that spirit of devotedness which forms so remarkable a feature in his character, he went vigorously to work, immediately on his arrival, to study the English lan- guage, and in a remarkably short time was able to speak it with considerable fluency. 82 UNIVEESITT OF Shortly after his arrival at JSTotre Dame, he was ap- pointed Assistant Superior, and Yice-President of the College. The latter office he occupied till 1851. The former he retained till Father Sorin became Provincial, when he was also promoted to the office of Yice-Pro- vincial. Prom 1851 to 1867, Father Granger had been, with one or two brief interruptions, Director of the JS'ovitiate for the ecclesiastical portion of the Congrega- tion, and Pastor of the Church at I^otre Dame. In 1867 he was removed from the J^ovitiate, and appointed Prefect of Religion in the College, still retaining the pastorship of the Church. In August, 1868, after the election of Father Sorin to the office of Superior General, Father Granger was elected Provincial of the Congregation in America, which office he still holds. Father Granger is of a very retiring disposition, never coming forward into notice unless when duty strictly obliges him to do so ; and hence his real merit and worth are not known except to those whose occupation or spiritual wants bring them in contact with him. We would be glad to speak here of his excellent qualities, especially as a priest, but we refrain from doing so, through respect for his wishes to remain unknown, ex- cept in the field of his duty. When he has gone to his reward, his virtues will be appreciated and praised by men. NOTKE DAME. 83 KEY. FEA:N^CIS COmTET. Rev. Francis Cointet, the second who filled the ofiice of Vice-President of the University, was born at La Roc, in France, on the 26th of February, 1816. At the age of about ten years he was sent by his parents to the College of Chateau Gontier, then the best educational institution in the diocese to which he belonged. Hav- ing completed his collegiate studies, he entered the The- ological Seminary of Mans, in September, 1834, and continued there to practice those Christian and social virtues which had won for him the affection of his teach- ers and companions at the College. After five years of studious application to the great questions of theology, he was ordained priest, in 1839, by the Right Rev. Dr. Bouvier, Bishop of Mans, and was appointed assistant pastor in Chatillon, one of the most important parishes in the diocese. While at this phice, he accidentally' saw the first letter written by his former intimate friend and associate, Yery Rev. Father Sorin, from ]N"otre Dame. From that time he constantly sighed to consecrate his life and labors to the spiritual welfare of his neglected fellow-beings, whether civilized or savage, amid the wild scenes of America. Accordingly, in 1843 he of- fered himself to Yery Rev. Father Moreau, at that time Superior General of the Congregation of Holy Cross, as a candidate for the American missions ; and in July 84 TmiVERSITT OF of that same year arrived at Kotre Dame. After one year spent at the l^ovitiate, lie made his religions pro- fession as a member of the Congregation, and from that moment gave himself up without reserve to the great work which he had undertaken. It would be both curious and interesting, did space permit, to accompany the zealous missionary through scenes of danger, hard- ship and holy exultation which thenceforth became his portion, but we must be content with a rapid glance at the leading events of his life. After five years of earnest labor as a missionary. Father Cointet was sent, in 1849, to JSTew Orleans, as Local Superior of a branch estab- lishment of the Order in that city. During the two years which he spent in that capacity, the establishment flourished, and happiness dwelt with all those who la- bored under his direction. In 1851 he was recalled, by his Superior, to ITotre Dame, and appointed Yice-President of the College. He occupied that position, however, but for a short time ; his heart yearned for the missions, and his Supe- riors, yielding to his wishes, gave him charge of five difierent missions, at that time under the care of the Congregation, viz. : Goshen and Laporte in Indiana, and Milan, Berrien and Bertrand in Michigan. For three years more he gave himself up to his charitable labor, but at last his constitution gave way. In Sep- tember, 1854, he returned one day from one of his mis- sions weary and sick ; every care that charity and deep NOTEE DAME. 85 affection could suggest was bestowed upon liim, but to no purpose. On the 19th of September, 185-i, he passed from the scenes of his self-sacrificing labors, to the man- sions of eternal happiness. His life was a series of good works; his death was that of a saintly priest, and his memory still lingers about Xotre Dame and the sur- rounding country, as the memory of one who forgot self that he might do good to others. KEY. KICHAED SHOKTIS. Rev. Richard Shortis, the third who filled the post of Yice-President at JSTotre Dame, was born at St. IN'icholas, in Ireland, on the 21st day of March, 1815. Of his early history I have been unable to obtain any particu- lars. In 1849, after passing a creditable examination, though not a student proper in the College, he received the degree of B. A. at the University of E'otre Dame, in company with Rev. ^N". H. Gillespie. It may be in- teresting to note, that these were the first degrees con- ferred by the University, &ve years after having been granted its Charter. Soon after graduation. Father Shortis entered the [N'ovitiate of the Congregation of H(>ly Cross, and while pursuing his theological studies, discharged the duties of professor of the English Lan- guage and Literature in the L"niversity. In 1850 he made his religious profession as a member of the Congregation, 86 UNIVERSITY OF and was ordained priest. Immediately after his ordina- tion, Father Shortis entered upon the laborious but consol- ing life of a missionary, till 1 852, when he was recalled, and appointed Vice-President of the College. From 1853 to 1856, he discharged the duties of General Secretary of the University, and of Professor. In 1856, Father Shortis was sent to take charge of the mission at La- porte, Ind., where he continued till 1858. He was then recalled to JN'otre Dame, and subsequently, in 1860, was sent to New Orleans, where he has since labored with his usual zeal in behalf of the inmates of St. Mary's Orphan Boys' Asylum, under the care of the Congregar tion of Holy Cross. EEY. K H. GILLESPIE. Rev. 'N. H. Gillespie, fourth in the list of Yice-Presi- dents of [N'otre Dame, was born at Browns^dlle, Pa. His early years passed without incident, beyond the usual catalogue of events common to youth whose chief occupation is to attend school and prepare themselves for usefulness in after-life. He was sent to Notre Dame to complete his studies, having accomplished which, he received the degree of A. B. in June, 1819, being the first graduate, in course, of the University. In 1851 he entered the Novitiate of the Congregation of Holy Cross, and began his theological studies, fulfilling, at the KOTKE DAaiE. 87 same time, the duties of Professor of Mathematics in the College. In 185^, having made his religions profession in the preceding year, he was sent by his Superior to Home, to complete his theological course, in the cele- brated schools of the Eternal City. This he did in the following years, and was ordained priest on the 29th day of June, 1856. Having returned to Kotre Dame, Father Gillespie was appointed Yice-President in 1856, which position he oc- cupied till 1859, when he was appointed President of St. Mary's College, Chicago, 111. In 1860 he was re- called to Notre Dame, and again filled the post of Yice- President. In 1863 Father Gillespie was sent to Paris, where he remained a year, and then being summoned to the Mother House of the Congregation at Mans, re- mained till the summer of 1866, when he returned to IS'otre Dame, where he is now occupied in fulfilling the duties of Master of JSTovices and editor of "Ave Maria." EEY. JAMES DILLOK Rev. James Dillon, the fifth who occupied the post of Yice-President at JSTotre Dame, was born in the County Gal way, Ireland, E'ovember 18th, 1833. He began his studies for the sacred ministry, in the land of his nativity, while yet very young, continued them in the city of Chicago, after the removal of his family to 88 UJSnVEESITY OF America, and finally completed them at ISTotre Dame. He entered the ISTovitiate of the Congregation of Holy Cross in October, 1853, and after a full course of the- ology, was ordained priest in 1858, on the same day with his brother. Rev. P. Dillon. In 1859, Father James, as he was familiarly called, was appointed to the office of Vice-President, in which position he gave evidence of that energy which was to the end one of his most striking characteristics. In 1860 he was appointed Presi- dent of St. Mary's College, Chicago. In 1861 he was recalled to ]N"otre Dame, and appointed one of a band of missionaries which the Superiors contemplated organiz- ing for that year; but the voice of war had already sounded through the land, and opened a field of labor to the missionaries, far difi'erent from what they had an- ticipated. A call came for Chaplains, and Father James, with his five companions, Pev. Fathers Corby, Cooney, Gillen, Leveque and Bourget, (the last two of whom fell victims of their zeal during their active service,) offered themselves to their Superiors to be sent as Chaplains. Father James was duly appointed one of the first Chaplains of the " Irish Brigade," with the rank of a regularly commissioned officer. He attended this Bri- gade through all its hard fighting, for two years, ever ready to answer the call of duty or charity, till con- stant exposure and unremitted toil brought on that most insidious of diseases, consumption. He obtained a fur- lough, when no longer able to serve, and was sent by NOTKE DAME. 89 his Superiors to travel in Europe for his health. His health appeared to have been restored by this trip, and he returned to take his post again amid the armed bat- talions ; but the disease only slept, and soon compelled him to retire. He was then sent to California bv his Superiors, with a view to revive his health. AYhile there, his zeal for the spiritual good of others made him foro'et his own weak condition, and instead of retraininoj health, he sank gradually under the influence of his dis- ease. Finding that a longer stay from home would be useless, he returned to ]S"otre Dame, to await the final call of his Creator. When his brother, Father Patrick, retired from the Congregation of Holy Cross, for rea- sons already stated. Father James would not remain inactive, but, with the requisite dispensation, accompa- nied him, to bear his part in the work to which duty called him. But the effort was too great, and the death of his brother, to whom he was almost passionately at- tached, gave the final blow to his already enfeebled con- stitution, and he calmly departed this life, on the 17th of December, just one month and two days after his brother. — May they both dwell together forever in the land of eternal bliss ! EEY. PATKICK DILLOK Pev. Patrick Dillon was Yice-President of the Uni- versity from 1864: to 1866, when he was appointed Presi- dent. (See preceding sketch.) 90 UNIVEESITT OF EEY. W. COEBY. Rev. W. Corby acted as Yice-President from May, 1865, till August, 1866, when lie became President. (See preceding sketch.) EEY. AUGUSTUS LEMOJSTMEE. Eev. Augustus Lemonnier was born in April, 1839, at Ahuille, in France. His boyhood and early youth were passed amid the enjoyments of a happy home, and in preparing himself for College by the elementary studies pursued in the common schools. At the age of nineteen he entered the College of Precigne, in the diocese of Mans. Here he spent seven years, during which time he completed the full collegiate course of that institu- tion. On his departure from College, Father Lemonnier entered upon the study of the Law, not having any idea at the time of studying for the sacred ministry. For one year he prosecuted his chosen study in the office of Mons. Houtin, and the year following in the office of Mons. Dubois, at Laval, France. After two years' experience in a law office. Father Lemonnier began to look upon the world in a far differ- ent light from that in which other young men in similar circumstances usually view it, and after a few months of NOTRE DAME. 91 serious reflection, and consultation with judicious friends, he abandoned the bright progpects of distinction which then smiled upon him, and rejoined his brother and College classmates, at the Theological Seminary at Mans, where he passed one year in the study of Philosophy. The death of his mother, about this time, removed the only obstacle to the execution of a project which he had entertained from the time of his determination to study for the ministry, namely, to enter the Seminary of For- eign Missions, in Paris. However, Father Sorin, his uncle, induced him to come to America, and, with this understanding, sent him to Rome, to study Theology in the Roman College. AYhile in Rome, Father Lemonnier entered the Con- gregation of Holy Cross, in October, 1860, being re- ceived by Rev. Father Drouelle, then Procurator Gen- eral of the Congregation. In 1861, Father Lemonnier was called to America, and arrived at J^otre Dame in February of that year, where he completed his theologi- cal studies, and after making his profession as a member of the Congregation, was ordained Priest on the 4th of ISTovember, 1863. Soon after his ordination. Father Lemonnier was ap- pointed Prefect of Discipline, in which office he con- tinued till May, 1865, when he was appointed by the Provincial Chapter, which met at that time. Prefect of Religion. In July, 1866, he was appointed Yice-Presi- 92 UNIVERSITY OF dent and Director of Studies in the University, which position he still occupies. Father Lemonnier has not only displayed a great deal of natural energy in the discharge of his official duties, but has also given evidence of considerable ability of a literary character. His almost complete mastery of the English language, within one year after his arrival at Notre Dame, showed a decided aptitude for languages, and several very fine dramatic productions, written amid the cares and annoyances of his office, gave evidence of literary talent, which we trust will some day develop itself in some work of importance. ^HWtiat^i lltimnl GKADUATES IN COUESE. C1L,A.SS OF 1849. Rev. N. ff. Gillespie. Rev. "N. H, Gillespie, the first graduate of the Uni- versity of Notre Dame, received his degrees in June, 1849. (See preceding sketch.) Rev. R. Shoi^is. Eev. Richard Shortis, who received his degrees at the same time as Father Gillespie, has already been noticed. 94: UmTERSITT OF OIj-A-SS of 185S. Rey. E. B. Kili^y. Eev. Edmund B. Kilroy is a native of Ireland, and was born on the 24:th of l^ovember, 1830, coming when very young, with his' parents, to the United States, he made his first studies in the schools of JS'ew York. In 1845, Father Kilroy entered the University of E"otre Dame, Ind., being then in his fifteenth year. In 1848, after three years in the College, he entered the Congre- gation of Holy Cross, which at that time was merely a religious society not regularly approved. Continuing his studies till June, 1852, Father Kilroy graduated with honor, and in the following year was employed as a pro- fessor in the college. In this capacity he continued, in the meantime prosecuting his theological studies, until 1854, when he was ordained priest and sent to take charge of one of the missions then at the disposal oi Superior of JSTotre Dame. In 1856, Father Kilroy was appointed President of the College of St. Mary's of tlie Lake, Chicago, 111. In this capacity he continued two years, giving entire satisfaction to all interested. In 1858, he was recalled and again appointed Pastor of the Church at Laporte, Ind, In June of this year he re- ceived his second degree. About this time, the decrees NOTRE DAME. 95 approving the Congregation of Holy Cross, and estab- lishing it as a regular Congregation, arrived at Kotre Dame, and it was generally understood that those who wished to separate themselves from the Congregation, for any good reason, would find it more convenient to do so at that time than later. Father Kilroy, prompted by a sense of duty to those whom nature called upon him to sustain, reluctantly profited by this opportunity, and separated himself from the Congregation. He began his duties as a secular priest at Lafayette, Ind., in the Diocese of Fort Wayne. He remained at the place w^orking good to all, like his Divine Master, till 1862, when he was appointed by Governor Morton one of the Special Agents of the State of Indiana, to see after the wounded. In 1864, another field was opened to his energetic and zealous cultivation, at Port Sarnia, Ontario, (Canada AVest.) In this place he re- mained till this present year, when he removed to St. Mary's, Ontario, where he continues the good work to w^hich he has consecrated his life. Although Father Kilroy is an earnest and devoted Clergyman, he is eminently sociable in his disposition, and strives to win men to virtue by making virtue pleas- ing and agreeable in their eyes, rather than by terrify- ing them by an austere and rigid piety, which, however good in itself, cannot be otherwise than repulsive to the great majority of men. 96 TINIVEESITT OF j^EV. f . Glennan. Eev. Patrick Glennan, of whose eariy history nothing is known at ITotre Dame, came to this University in 1849, and after completing a full course of studies, grad- uated in June, 1852. While at Notre Dame he was a young man of excellent moral character and possessed of fine talents. After graduating, he entered a Theolog- ical Seminary somewhere in the East, where he applied himself diligently, and after a full course of ecclesiastical studies was ordained Priest. When last heard from he was a clergyman in the Diocese of New York, I regret that want of information renders any thing like a proper sketch of this Rev. gentleman impossible. 03L.-A.SS OF 1856- Rev. E. M.. P'Callaghan. Rev. Eugene M. O'Oallaghan, the only graduate of this year, was born on the 4th of May, 1831, near J^ew- market, in the county Cork, Ireland. His parents were in comfortable circumstances though not possessing a superfluity of this world's riches. Being the youngest of the family and of a delicate constitution, which dis- NOTEE DAME. 97 qualified him for labor on liis fatlier'g farm, he was per- mitted to attend school regularly till his twentieth year. During this time he devoted himself earnestly to the study of English and Mathematics. At the age of twenty, he left his native land and came to the " home of the brave and the land of the free." The young stu- dent proceeded at once to Detroit, Michigan, where a brother and two sisters dwelt in comfortable circumstan- ces. They, knowing how entirely unacquainted their younger brother was with anything like labor, wished to maintain him until some suitable occupation could be obtained. The young '' Irish boy," however, valued his independence more than an easy life, and accordingly shouldered his axe, determined to make his own living ; and after a painful apprenticeship of some weeks, suc- ceeded in doing a respectable day's work, at the honest trade once exercised by a late President of the United States. In 1852, Father O'Callaghan went to Toledo and en- gaged as a teacher in the Catholic school, then under the direction of Rev. Father Foley, since deceased. During this time he pursued the study of Latin with that energy which is a distinguishing feature in his character. In 1853 he entered the University of N'otre Dame and after three years of assidious application, during which time he won the esteem of his professors and fellow-students, he recei^'ed the degree of A. B., and left IS'otre Dame, taking with him, in addition to his degree, the Premium 7 98 UmVEESITT OF of Honor for tliat year. Two years later "he received his second degree of A. M. In September, 1856, Father O'Callaghan, entered the Theological Seminary at Cleve- land to prepare himself for the ministry. The Superior of that establishment soon discovered that the regular studies of the young seminarian did not occupy all of his time, and moreover that he was of too energetic a dis- position to remain unoccupied ; he therefore requested him to teach at the Preparatory Seminary, w^hich was then adjacent to the Seminary proper. Father O'Callag- han cheerfully accepted the offer and undertook the classes of English and Mathematics. The writer of this brief sketch having enjoyed the benefits of his teaching, takes sincere pleasure in testifying to its thoroughness and systematic clearness. In 1859, Father O'Callaghan was ordained Priest, and since that time has been dealing out the benefits not only of his zeal for the spiritual welfare of those com- mitted to his care, but also of an extensive and varied knowledge, rendered pleasing and attractive, by that suavity of manner which always accompanies a well cul- tivated mind. NOTEE DAME. 99 CIj-A^SS of 1859. James O'Brien. James Brien was born in the County of Wicklow, Ireland, in the year 1837. At the age of thirteen, he came to this country and entered College, with a good preparatory education, in 1851. He left the iirst College at which he studied without taking out his degrees, and entered the field of usefulness as a lecturer, in which occupation, he soon made himself quite popular in many of the cities and towns of Iowa, AYisconsin and Illinois. In 1858, Mr. O'Brien encraored as a Professor of Ancient Languages at Xotre Dame, at the same time making himself master of those branches of the Collegiate Course in which he was deficient. This he accomplished before the Annual Commencement in 1859, when he received the degree of A. B. He continued to teach at Notre Dame till 1861, when he determined to prepare himself for the legal profession. With this view he left Kutre Dame, but after one year of study, discontinued in consequence of the unsettled state of things occa- sioned b}^ the late war, and returned to his favorite occu- pation, the teaching of ancient languages. In 1863, he left Notre Dame a second time and became a professor of his special branches, at Sinsinaua Mound College, 98 TNIYEESITT OF of Honor for that year. Two years later he received his second degree of A. M. In September, 1856, Father O'Callaghan, entered the Theological Seminary at Cleve- land to prepare himself for the ministry. The Superior of that establishment soon discovered that the regular studies of the young seminarian did not occupy all of his time, and moreover that he was of too energetic a dis- position to remain unoccupied ; he therefore requested him to teach at the Preparatory Seminary, which was then adjacent to the Seminary proper. Father O'Callag- han cheerfully accepted the offer and undertook the classes of English and Mathematics. The writer of this brief sketch having enjoyed the benefits of his teaching, takes sincere pleasure in testifying to its thoroughness and systematic clearness. In 1859, Father O'Callaghan was ordained Priest, and since that time has been dealing out the benefits not only of his zeal for the spiritual welfare of those com- mitted to his care, but also of an extensive and varied knowledge, rendered pleasing and attractive, by that suavity of manner which always accompanies a well cul- tivated mind. NOTKE DAME. OL-A.SS OF 1859. James O'Brien. James O Brien was born in the County of Wicklow, Ireland, in the year 1837. At the ao;e of thirteen, he came to this country and entered College, with a good preparatory education, in 1851. He left the first College at which he studied without takino^ out his deo^rees, and entered the field of usefulness as a lecturer, in which occupation, he soon made himself quite popular in many of the cities and towns of Iowa, Wisconsin and Illinois. In 1858, Mr. O'Brien eno^ao^ed as a Professor of Ancient Languages at JS'otre Dame, at the same time making himself master of those branches of the Collegiate Course in which he was deficient. This he accomplished before the Annual Commencement in 1859, when he received the degree of A. B. He continued to teach at Notre Dame till 1861, when he determined to prepare himself for the legal profession. With this view he left Notre Dame, but after one year of study, discontinued in consequence of the unsettled state of things occa- sioned by the late war, and returned to his favorite occu- pation, the teaching of ancient languages. In 1863, he left Notre Dame a second time and became a professor of his special branches, at Sinsinaua Mound College, 100 UNIVEKSITT OF Wis., where lie remained till tliat Institution closed in ISGtt. In the Autumn of that same year, he married the daughter of M. Lyons, Esq., of Galena, 111. He next taught for some time in the Seminary at Mineral Point, Wis,, subsequently went to Dubuque, Iowa, completed his legal studies in the office of O'JN'eill and Mcl^ulty, and was admitted to the practice of the law in March, 1868. He began practicing at once in Lansing, Iowa, and has already secured an extensive patronage, together with a constantly increasing popularity amongst all classes of the community in which he resides. This will not be at aU surprising to those who have had the pleasure of know- ing Mr. O'Brien, for they must have recognized in him all those sterling qualities which compel respect and secure the good will of all. As a teacher, he is thorough and energetic, as a writer, fluent and forcible, as a speaker, pleasing beyond the great majority of even good speakers. His style in this department might be charac- terized as that of irresistible logic, clothed in the lan- guage of almost poetic eloquence ; as a friend he is genial and true. With such qualities, success is within his reach and awaits but his bidding to crown him victor. Col. Robert Wealy. Kobert Healy, the particulars of whose early history I have been unable to ascertain, entered the Uni- NOTRE DAME. 101 versitj of l^otre Dame in 1853, where lie spent six years, applying himself yigorously to his stndies, and in June, 1859, received the degree of Bachelor of Arts. After graduating, Mr. Healy entered upon the study of law in Chicago, 111., but the breaking out of the war gave a different direction to his thoughts and he entered the army. His patriotic spirit and unwavering bravery soon attracted the attention of his superior officers, and in a short time he was promoted, by regular stages, to the rank of Colonel of volunteers. At the close of the war. Col. Healy was tendered a Captaincy in the regular army, which he accepted. He has since been on duty in various places, and commands the respect, while he wins the love, of all with whom he comes in contact. AYe would have been pleased to give a fuller sketch of Col. Healy's life, but our efforts to obtain the necessary material were not successful. Rev. Philip Carrol. Philip Carrol, of whose early life I have been unable to ascertain anything definite, having been accepted by the Eight Kev. Dr. Luers, Bishop of Fort Wayne, as a candidate for the sacred ministry, entered the University of J^otre Dame in September, 1857, already proficient in many of the collegiate branches, and considerably ad- 102 TNIVEESITY OF vanced in otLers. Mr. Carrol was an intelligent student, and not only made rapid progress in his regular studies, but also added daily to an already abundant store of gen- eral information. In June, 1859, he had completed his classical studies, and received the degree of Bachelor of Arts. After graduating, Mr. Carrol remained at JN'otre Dame for one year, as a student of theology, under the Yery Rev. Father Granger. In 1860, he entered the Theological Seminary at Cincinnati, Ohio, and gave such entire sat- isfaction both by his application to study and by his piety, that he was in the course of 1861, raised to the order of Deacon. But the Almighty was already satis- lied with the virtue of his faithful Levite and called him to his eternal reward. Thus passed away from earth, in the flower of his man- hood, one whose mind was richly adorned with virtue and science, and before whom a vast lield of usefulness lay, waiting for his hand to cultivate it. The writer of this sketch can never forget the winning manner in which Mr. Carrol, during his last year at ^otre Dame, (which was the writer's first) sought to make virtue and nobleness of mind attractive to all with whom he came in contact. lie demonstrated in his own conduct, the truth so much insisted upon by writers on morality, that kindness can accomplish far more than any other influ- ence that can be brought to bear upon the human heart. NOTRE DAME. 103 dj-A^SS 0:F 1860- James B. Runnion. James Bojer Runnion was born in the City of Lafay- ette, Indiana, September 29th, 1842. When about two years of age, his parents removed to St. Louis, Mo., where they remained till 1856, during which interval Mr. James Runnion attended school regularly, prepara- tory to entering College. In 1856, the family removed to Chicago, 111., where they reside at present. Shortly after the removal of his family to Chicago, Mr. James Runnion began his collegiate course at Racine College, Wisconsin. In the second year of his course, (185Y) he came to Notre Dame University, where, by dilligent study, rendered fruitful by a more than ordinary degree of native talent, he completed his collegiate studies in three years, and obtained the honors of the haccalaureate at the Annual Commencement in 1860, being still in his eighteenth year, though developed in mind beyond what his age would indicate. Believing himself still too young to enter upon the study of a profession, Mr. Runnion entered the Univer- sity of Chicago, where he remained for one year, receiv- ing at the end of that time, the honorary degree of Mas- ter of Arts. This was one of the first degrees conferred 104 TNIVEESITY OF by that University ; Major Charles W. Scammon, of Chicago, and Gen. Thos. M. Hyde, of Maine, receiving the degree of A. B. at the same time. Soon after this, Mr. Runnion entered the army of West Virginia, to fight for the Union, then in danger. He was tendered a Majority in a volunteer cavalry regi- ment, but declined, hoping to secure a position in the regular army and adopt for life the profession of arms. Failing in this, he resolved to travel in Europe, and being seconded in this by his father, David Runnion, Esq., he set sail from IS^ew York, two weeks after he had first determined upon this course. Mr. Runnion remained in Europe about two and a half years, visiting some of the principal cities of Eng- land, Wales, Ireland, Scotland and Germany, before pro- ceeding to Berlin, at whose famous University he spent one year, taking out a diploma in the law department on his departure thence. After this, he made another tour through Central and Southern Germany, and so familiarized himself with the language of the country, that he readily passed for a native "Berliner," a state of afiairs which he found both pleasant and economical. This second tour he wound up in Paris, w^iere he remained nearly one year with a view to perfect his knowledge of the French language. He also attended, during his stay in Paris, a course of lectures in the Uni- versity of France. From Paris, Mr. Punnion made a third tour, through NOTEE DAME. 105 the south of France, visiting all places of note in that region ; passing thence into Italy, he traveled on with a sense of growing pleasure, as he saluted the renowned places of that classic land, till he reached Rome, and gazed upon those historic scenes which had often painted themselves to his youthful imagination, as he pored over the pages of Livy and Horace. From Rome, Mr. Run- nion returned through Switzerland to Paris, and soon after, took passage from Havre for New York. One of the first things he did on his return home, was to deliver an address to tlie students of the University of ISTotre Dame, at the Annual Commencement, in response to an invitation from the President. In this address, Mr. Runnion showed that he had not traveled in vain — his mind, naturally brilliant, and, moreover, prepared by systematic training, had seized upon and classified the varied objects of interest which came within his ob- servation, and made them a treasure from which he can draw at will. On this occasion he received from his Alma Mater his second honorary degree of Master of Arts. After this, Mr. Runnion devoted something more than a year to the study of law, but finally abandoned it for journalism, which, with the profession of letters, will probably be a life-long pursuit. Previous to entering upon his present calling, he had contributed to both Eng- lish and American periodicals and magazines, and felt that literature was the vocation most congenial to his 106 TNIYEESITY OF tastes, a fact first discovered, no doubt, wlien as a student at IS'otre Dame, lie was one of the original Editors of The Progress^ a manuscript college paper read semi- monthly in the study hall. Mr. Kunnion has been for upwards of two years, Associate Editor of The Chicago Times ^ having charge of the Literary and Tine Art de- partments. About the time that he assumed his present responsibility as Associate Editor, Mr. E-unnion married Miss Ellen S. Conkey, an amiable and accomplished Chi- cago lady, possessed of an unusual talent for music ; a talent which the wife of Mr. Eunnion ought to possess ; for we know that he, like most men of cultivated minds, has an appreciative taste for music. With his abilities and under the influence of domestic harmony, it will be surprising if Mr. Runnion does not attain an enviable reputation in the domain of Literature. John Collins. John Collins was born at Glandore, County Cork, Ireland, in June, 1837. Up to the age of fourteen, he attended school in his native village, when he came with his parents to the United States. For three years after his arrival at LaSalle, 111., he continued to attend school, and manifested an intense desire for knowledge. From 1854: to 185 Y he served in a drug store, and made himself perfectly acquainted with that important busi- NOTRE DA^IE. 107 ness. In 1857, Mr. Collins entered the University of Notre Dame, considerably advanced in studies, and with a mind well developed by an intelligent exercise in busi- ness. While at IS'otre Dame, he was an extremely close student, and manifested a decided taste for the more se- rious kind of studies. With all this seriousness, how- ever, he was amiable and sociable in all his relations, and made himself a general favorite with both Professors and students. In 1860 he graduated with distinction, receiving the deo-ree of Bachelor of Arts. In 1861 he entered the Law College in Chicago, 111., and after two years of careful study, was admitted to practice. He opened an office at LaSalle, and such was the high opinion enter- tained of his ability, that he was appointed City Attor- ney of that place. He occupied this office but one year, after which he removed to Cairo, 111., and had just opened an office there, when disease fastened its grip upon him, and after six weeks of suffering, he breathed his last, on the 12th of December, 1864, in the twenty- seventh year of his age, and at the very dawn of his fame. Had he hved, Mr. Collins would certainly have been an ornament to the legal profession, especially as a pleader; for his clear judgment and great reasoning powers, backed by an abundant store of information, would have rendered him an almost irresistible speaker. 108 UNIVEESITY OF OIj-A-SS of 186S. Rev. M.. B. Bi^wn. Rev. Micliael B. Brown was born near Plattsburgh, in the State of New York, on the 20th of September, 1840, and up to the age of twelve lived in the happy freedom of childhood on his father's farm not far from the shores of the celebrated Lake Champlain. At the age of twelve he removed with his parents to Sandusky City, Ohio, where he remained for live years, attending school during the winter time, and working with his father during the summer. In 1857, being then seventeen, he entered St. Mary's Preparatory Seminary in Cleveland, Ohio, with a view to preparing himself for the sacred ministry, for which he had manifested a decided inclination, even while yet a child. He remained in Cleveland two years, applying himself earnestly to the study of Latin, English and Mathematics, and was considered by his teachers a very bright student. In 1859, Father Brown entered the University of ISTotre Dame, determined to secure the fullest advan- tages of a college education, before assuming the re- sponsibilities of the ministry. Early in 1860 he made application for admission into NOTKE DAME. 109 the Congregation of Holy Cross, and was received into the iSTovitiate in March of the same year. While in the Kovitiate, he continued to prosecute his studies with vigor, and also began his career as a teacher, an occu- pation for which he always manifested a preference. In June, 1S62, he received the degree of Bachelor of Arts, and in the following September began his theo- logical studies, which he continued till Jane 10th, 1867, when he was ordained priest. Since his ordination, as well as before. Father Brown has taught different branches in the University, especially Greek, Latin and Logic, till September, 1868, when he was appointed to the profes- sorship of Moral and Mental Philosophy, a position which he still occupies, and in which he takes an evi- dent pleasure. In addition to an earnest love for philo- sophical studies, Father Brown is not wanting in ability as a writer, having contributed to various journals of the day, both in prose and verse. His efforts thus far, though bearing marks of yet imperfect development, still possess much that speaks of natural ability, which it needs but time and cii'cumstances to bring into play. P^or. J. A. Lyons. Prof. Joseph Aloysius Lyons, the subject of the fol- lowing sketch, is the youngest of thirteen children ; he was born on the 7th of ]^ovember, 1838, in the City of 110 ITNIVEESITT OF Utica, E"ew York. In 1847 his parents moved West, and settled in the vicinity of ISTiles, Mich. Prof. Lyons, then a mere boy, was about to enter the University of N^otre Dame as a student, bnt the death of his father, occur- ring at this time, changed his prospects in this respect. Finding that he could not then enter college, he en- gaged in the office of Mr. , at Mies, Mich., as a learner of the art of printing. jN^ot liking the persons he had to deal with, he became dissatisfied with his po- sition, and applied to Rev. Father Sorin for admission into the Manual Labor School at ]^otre Dame. Father Sorin, seeing in the bright boy the future man of energy and usefulness, dispensed with the ordinary conditions, such as age, etc., and admitted him as an apprentice shoemaker. Prof. Lyons' taste did not incline him to the last, yet he worked well and intelligently, and after a short time (considering his youth) succeeded in mak- ing a fair pair of boots, which won the premium at the County Fair, though many older workmen competed for it. Notwithstanding this devotedness to his trade. Prof Lyons improved every opportunity of cultivating his mind, and even began the study of Latin, with Mr. Thomas Hayes, his intimate friend, now the Rev. Tliomas Hayes, and for a long time a distinguished missionary among the Mexican Indians. His rapid advancement in Latin and other branches, together with his exemplary behavior, which had ob- tained for him on two occasions the Premium of Honor, NOTRE DAME. Ill soon recommeuded him more strongly to Father Sorin's generosity, who now permitted him, as a reward of his merit, to go and study at St. Aloysius' Seminary. Here Prof. Lyons remained from 1852 to 1858, applying himself earnestly to his studies, under the direction of Yery Rev. Father Granger. After he had been a short time at the Seminary, he was appointed to take charge of the studies at the Manual Labor School and teach some of the classes there. In 1858, having completed his classical studies, and attended the class of Philosophy for some time, he was appointed Director of the Junior and Minim Depart- ments in the University. For two years he had charge of the discipline of these two departments, taught vari- ous classes, and established the two societies, viz. : the Philomathean and Holy Angels' Societies, both of them still flourishing. In 1860, Prof. Lyons was sent with Father James Dillon to St. Mary's of the Lake, in Chicago, where he filled the office of Prefect of Discipline, and at the same time taught Latin with brilliant success, for one year. On his return to Xotre Dame in 1861, after seri- ous reflection, he concluded that his vocation was not for the ministry, and intimated his conclusion to his Superiors, who, though regretting very much his de- cision, yet could not urge him to do that which he believed was not the will of God. Prof. Lyons was then engaged as a regular Professor 114 UNIVERSITY OF School Inspector, which, office he filled, with credit to himself and advantage to all concerned, for one year, after which he resigned, his aspiring mind urging him to seek a higher degree of culture than it had as yet at- tained. Accordingly, in the spring session of 1859 he came to !N"otre Dame for the purpose of completing his collegiate studies, at the same time engaging as a teacher in the preparatory classes. In 1862, Prof. Howard, prompted by that lofty sense of patriotism, which never allows personal convenience or interest to interfere with duty, enlisted as a private, in the 12th Regiment, Michigan Volunteers. On the 6th of April, he received a severe bullet wound in the neck, the bullet passing close to the jugular vein, and severing some of the tendons of the left arm. He was taken to the hospital at Evansville, Ind., where he lay until June, when he was honorably discharged, his wound rendering him incapable of further service in the field. After his discharge, Prof. Howard returned to E'otre Dame, and, as he had completed the required studies be- fore he entered the army, received his first degree of Bachelor of Arts, and was appointed Professor of Rhet- oric and English Literature in the University. Two |: years later he received his second degree of Master of "• Arts. j' In July, 1864, Prof. Howard married Miss Julia Red- * mon, of Detroit, Mich., and has since lived in the enjoy- i NOTRE DAME. 115 ment of domestic felicity close by I^otre Dame, where lie has been constantly employed as professor of differ- ent branches, but especially of English Literature and Astronomy, which position he holds at present. Prof. Howard is not only well qualified for a teacher, possessing knowledge, and, what is almost as necessary, \ that peculiar tact of gaining the affections of his classes, , but possesses, moreover, in a high degree, those refined ] qualities which make the pleasing and instructive writer. He has already published three works, namely, a " Gram- mar of the Enghsli Language" for the use of beginners, "Excelsior," or Essays on Politeness aud Education, and a small volume of moral tales for the young, entitled "Uncle Edward's Stories." He has also written many ex- cellent poems, which appeared from time to time in various journals and periodicals, and which, let us hope, he will have published in book form ere long. It will be a suf- ficient expression of the esteem in which he is held as a poet, to state, that he was unanimously elected, at the preliminary meeting of the Alumni last June, to read "the poem" at the first regular meeting in June, 1869. F. C. BiGELOW. Francis C. Bigelow, son of Dr. Bigelow, well known in jthe scientific world as a thorough physician and botanist, I was born at Lancaster, Ohio, on the 2Tth of September, 116 ITNIVEESITT OF 1843. Up to the age of thirteen, he attended the com- mon schools of his native city, and in 1856 entered the Junior Department of the University of Kotre Dame. His progress in study was very remarkable in one so young, and he manifested, even at that early age, a de- cided taste for literature. This taste developed as he grew older, though not to the detriment of his regular studies, and on his entrance into the Senior Department, he connected himself with the St. Aloysius Literary Society, the only one then existing in the College. He was, till the end of his College course, a prominent mem- ber of that organization, and also of the Thespian (dra- matic) Society, in which he often contributed to the amusement and advantage of his fellow-students, by taking part in the public entertainments given by that Society. Mr. Bigelow was, moreover, one of the orig- inal Editors of " The Progress," a manuscript College paper, and predecessor of the present " Scholastic Year." His many sparkling contributions to this pioneer paper are still remembered by many. Mr. Bigelow having completed his collegiate studies, received the degree of Bachelor of Arts at the Annual Commencement in June, 1862, being then in the nine- teenth year of his age. On this same occasion he re- ceived the Premium of Honor for the second time, since his entrance into ]N"otre Dame. He received his second degree of Master of Arts in June, 1867. Shortly after graduating, Mr. Bigelow entered the law I NOTEE DAME. 117 office of E. Y. Swift, Esq., in Detroit, Midi., where lie remained one year. Afterwards he spent one year in the office of William Gray, Esq., and in May, 1865, was admitted to the practice of the law in the Supreme Court of the State of Michigan. After his admission to the bai* he returned to his native place, Lancaster, Ohio, where he read law for another year in the office of Messrs. Hunter and Dangherty, and in May, 1866, was admitted to practice in the courts of Ohio. He now opened an office at Dayton, Ohio, and by his energy and uprightness so won the esteem and confidence of the inhabitants of that place, that in the spring of 1867 they nominated him for the office of City Solicitor of Dayton, O. Shortly after this gratifying episode, he formed a law partnership with Mr. Jordan, of Dayton, O., which still continues. I Mr. Bigelow is a yonng man of fine talents, governed by an excellent judgment. K^atnrally of an energetic i and sell-reliant disposition, he cannot tail to make the best nse of these talents, and render himself an orna- ment to the profession which he has embraced. James JM. Howard. James M. Howard was born beside the lovely Shan- non, in Ireland, in the year 1812. The first twelve years of his life were spent at the place of his birth ; and. 118 UNIVEKSITY OF though young, he imbibed largely the national spirit of his countrymen. In 1854, his parents removed to the United States, and took up their abode in the City of Chicago, where Mr. James Howard, then quite a boy, attended school, among others the Boys' High School, at that time conducted by Prof. A. J. Sawyer, a brother-in-law of Elihu Burritt, the " Learned Blacksmith." Having made considerable pro- gress in the branches taught in these schools, he removed with his parents to a farm in the western part of Indi- ana, where, with the healthful country air and abundance of physical exercise, he developed into a healthful and muscular young man. In February, 1858, Mr. Howard entered the Univer- sity of ^N'otre Dame. During his career as a student, he was remarkable for diligence in study, and a good natured evenness of temper which it was extremely difficult to ruffle. After four years of close study, Mr. Howard received the degree of Bachelor of Arts at the Annual Commence- ment in June, 1862, being then in his twentieth year. After spending some months at home, he caught the pre- vailing spirit of the time and entered the army, having received from Gov. Yates a commission as Second Lieu- tenant in the 58tli Illinois Infantry, at that time com- manded by his former college-mate, Col. Wm. F. Lynch. He served in the army with credit till the Spring ol 1865, when he was honorably discharged for disability, NOTRE DAME. 119 caused bj a severe wound in the left shoulder, received while bravely doing his duty in the battle of Yellow Bajon, La., being the last of the series of battles fought on the Ked Kiver, in 1861-, under Gen. Banks. In 1865, Mr. Howard entered the law office of Hon. Thos. J. Merrifield, at Valparaiso, Ind., and after a full course of study and a satisfactory examination, was, in 1867, admitted to the practice of the Law in the Courts of Indiana. In June, of the same year, he received his second deo^ree of Master of Arts. Shortly after his admission to practice, Mr. Howard opened an office at Logansport, Ind., where he is now doing a good business. He was lately elected to the office of City Justice, which office he still fills. Mr. Howard is of a cheerful and genial disposition, which, with a good share of natural ability, must insure him success, both in a social and professional point of view. 011..A-SS OF 1864. Rev. p. J. Spillard. Eev. Daniel J. Spillard, the oldest of thirteen chil- dren, was born in the City of Cork, Ireland, on the 8th day of I^ovember, 1839. In 1841, his parents removed 120 UmVEESITY OF to the United States, and resided, for the subsequent ten years, in Rochester, New York, where Father Spillard attended, first the Public Schools, and afterwards the Catholic Select School, opened at St. Mary's Church, St. Paul Street. He also attended the Academy of the Sacred Heart, opened in the City of Rochester about that time, until its final closing up. In 1853, he removed with his parents to Erie, Pa., where he remained about one year. During that period he was once placed in imminent peril by the falling of a gallery in St. Patrick's Cathedral. In 1854, the family removed to Elgin, 111., where Father Spillard attended both the public and private schools successively, and previous to his entrance into the University of jN'otre Dame, passed two years in the Elgin Academy. Considerably advanced in collegiate studies. Father Spillard entered the University of J^otre Dame in Feb- ruary, 1862, and after two years of diligent application, completed the studies prescribed in the collegiate course, and in June, 1861, received the Degree of Bachelor of Arts. On that same occasion he was chosen to deliver the Valedictory Oration, which he did in a most efi'ec- tive manner. He likewise bore away with him the Pre- mium of Honor for that year. Some months after his graduation. Father Spillard resolved to link his destiny with the Institution wliere he had completed his studies, and accordingly entered the NOTEE DAME. 121 Novitiate of tlie Congregation of Holy Cross, at, Notre Dame, and, after the prescribed term of probation, made his profession as a member of the Congregation, in September, 1866. He continued his theological stud- ies till August, 1868, when he was, on the 28th day of that month, ordained priest. Previous to his ordination. Father Spillard had been engaged in teaching Greek and Latin, in the College, but after his ordination, was appointed Prefect of Dis- cipline, which position he still holds. Father Spillard is naturally of an energetic and sociable disposition, and needs but to be known to be esteemed. Pi^F. A. J. Stage. Prof. Arthur J. Stace, was born on the 28th day of January, 1838, at Berwick, in the County of Sussex, England. His childhood passed away in rural happiness, on his father's farm, where he received his elementary education under the immediate supervision of his mother, a talented and highly educated lady. When Mr. Stace was about nine or ten years of age, his mother, pre- viously a member of the Church of England, became a convert to the Catholic Church, and Mr. Stace himself was baptized in that Church March 11th, 1819, and afterwards received confirmation from His Eminence 122 IJNIVEESITY OF Cardinal Wiseman, then Bishop, in partibus^ of Mele- pontanus. From 1849 to 1852 Mr. Stace continued to improve his mind and fit himself for future usefulness. In June, 1852, the family removed to Canada West, (now Ontario,) and took up their abode at Toronto, where they resided till 1858. During this time, Mr. Stace served a five years' apprenticeship, in the art of printing, in the Mirror office, then conducted by Mr. C. Don- levy. In May, 1852, Mr. Stace came to the United States, and took up his abode at Marshall, Michigan, where he taught a Catholic school for some time. In January, 1860, he entered the University of l^otre Dame as a student, where he soon won universal sym- pathy by his pleasing manners and sociable disposition, a,nd, after a short experience in that capacity, engaged as a teacher in the Preparatory Department, pursuing, at the same time, those studies of the Collegiate Course in which he was still deficient. He continued thus till 1864, when he received, in June, the degree of Bachelor of Arts, and in June, 1866, the second degree of Master of Arts. Since his graduation, in 1864, Prof. Stace has been, with two brief interruptions, engaged in teaching at the University of IsTotre Dame. He taught, successively, many of the branches taught in the University, and finally adopted the Mathematics as a specialty, and at NOTRE DAME. 123 the present time is Professor of Mathematics and Sur- veying. Prof. Stace also devotes considerable time and atten- tion to Literature. A brilliant imagination, with a lively sense of the humorous, gives a peculiar attractiveness to his writings. His contributions to some of the journals and magazines of the day have been highly appreciated, and plainly indicate a rich and varied talent as a writer. Pi^F. M.. A. J. Baasen. Prof. Michael A. J. Baasen was born in the City of Luxembourg, in the Grand Duchy of Luxembourg, Ger- many, on the 2nd day of June, 1844. When he had reached the age of six years, his father was appointed Consul to the United States, and accordingly removed to this country with his family. After being relieved from the duties of his office, he determined to remain in America, and settled in Milwaukee, Wis. Mr. Baasen entered College quite young, and, with occasional brief intermissions, continued to prosecute his studies, in different institutions, and finally came to the University of E'otre Dame, in 1862, where he completed li'.s collegiate studies in 1861, receiving, at the Annual (Commencement of that year, the degree of Bachelor of Arts. Since graduating, Prof. Baasen has been actively en- 124 UNIVEESITY OF gaged in teaching tlie ancient and modern languages in the University of ]N"otre Dame, where he enjoys the confidence and esteem of all. Prof. Baasen, though of a retiring disposition, never putting himself forward beyond his actual occupation, yet has not been able to conceal the fact that he pos- sesses an uncommon share of ability, backed by a fund of useful and solid information. We shall be much dis- appointed if he does not yet make himself known and felt in the world. Joseph Mealy. Joseph Healy was born at Elgin, 111., on the 6th day of !N"ovember, ISM. Up to the age of fifteen, he lived with his parents in the place of his nativity, attending, in the mean time, the schools of that place. In March, 1859, Mr. Healy entered the University of ]N'otre Dame, where he was distinguished among his fellows, both for talent and diligence. After five years of earnest study, during which he completed the full collegiate course, and, moreover, made himself proficient in some branches not required by the regular course, Mr. Healy received, at the Annual Commencement in June, 1861, the degree of Bachelor of Arts. After graduation, Mr. Healy determined to fit himself for the legal profession, and with that energy and NOTEE DAME. 125 decision of character which are among his most prominent characteristics, he entered at once into the Law Depart- ment of the University of Michigan, at Ann Arbor. Here he attended the full course of law lectures, and after a creditable examination received the degree of Bachelor of Laws, in March, 1866. In June of the same year he received his second degree of Master of Arts at the University of ]^otre Dame. On leaving the University of Michigan, Mr. Healy presented himself for examination before the Judges of the Supreme Court of the State of Illinois, at Ottawa, and, giving entire satisfaction, was admitted to practice law in the State of Illinois. In less than one month after his admission to prac- tice, Mr. Healy formed a law partnership with Hon. S. Wilcox, of Elgin, 111., with whom he continued until the partnership was unavoidably dissolved, by the elec- tion of Mr. Wilcox, in June, 1867, as Judge of the Twenty-eighth Judicial Circuit of the State of Illinois. Immediately afterwards, however, he formed a sec- ond partnership with Hon. R. ]^. Botsford, (formerly Judge of the County Court of Kane County, 111.,) and has been practicing with him since that time, in his na- tive city. Mr. Healy is a young man of more than ordinary ability. His mind is of the deep and grasping kind rather than the brilliant, and we would rather expect from him a sound decision, than a brilliant display. His 126 UNIVERSITY OF place is on the bench, rather than the rostrum, and we do not donbt that, before many years more, the people will recognize his real worth, and place him in that po- sition for which nature has so well fitted him. OXiA.SS OF 1865- Rey. John Flynn. Rev. John Flynn was born in Ireland, on the 5th day of August, 1842. The first ten years of his life were passed amidst the endearing scenes of home. In 1852, his parents removed to the United States, and Father Flynn, as yet a mere boy, attended the common schools, where he became thoroughly grounded in the elementary branches of education. In 1862, being then in his twentieth year. Father Flynn entered the University of I^otre Dame as a stu- dent. For three years he applied himself with earnest- ness and dilligence, (almost too much so for his physical good,) and in June, 1865, received the degree of Bach- elor of Arts. In September of the same year he was sent to the celebrated Theological Seminary at Montreal, as a stu- dent for the Rt. Rev. Dr. Luers, Bishop of Fort Wayne, and for three years applied himself with his character- NOTKE DAME. 127 istic zeal, to tlie study of theology. On the 21st of June, 1S6S, having previously passed through the inferior grades of the sacred ministry, he was ordained Priest. Since his ordination. Father Flynn, has been laboring zealously for the spiritual welfare of his neighbor, and, although few, besides the good people who profit by his ministrations and Him " who seeth in secret " know the good that he is doing, yet lie is happy in his comparative obscurity, wishing only to do good and secure the unfail- ing reward promised to the faithful laborers in the Lord's vineyard. Prof. JVLichael T. Corby. Prof. Michael T. Corby was born at Detroit in the State of Michigan, on the 20th of February, 1814, and received his primary education in the schools of that place. However he entered the University of Xotre Dame while yet very young, but after some time inter- rupted his studies for a period. Subsequently he studied successively at two different colleges in Kentucky, whence returning in 1860, he entered Bryant & Strat- ton's Commercial College in Detroit, Avhere he graduated in the commercial course in July, 1862. In 1863, Prof Corby returned to Kotre Dame, to com- plete his classical studies and pursue the study of Music. He continued this course vigorously for two years and at 128 TJNIYEESITT OP the Commencement in June, 1865, received the collegi- ate degree of Bachelor of Arts. Returning the follow- ing year, Prof. Corby began his career as a teacher, and continued to apply himself assidiously to the theoretical and practical study of Music. His progress in this branch was truly wonderful, especially in the culture of his voice, which in the beginning was neither extensive in compass nor particularly agreeable in quality, but which by persevering efforts he has expanded almost to the greatest attainable compass of the male voice, and has so improved its tone and flexibility that his superior, in this respect, will seldom be met with even amongst singers of enviable reputation. In 1868, Prof. Corby was requested to take charge of the Yocal Music Department in the University, which he did, and the marked improvement in the singing, especially at our College exhibitions, attests his efficiency as a teacher of this beautiful art. He is not an enthusi- ast in his profession ; for while he loves music for its own sake, he cultivates it rather with calm determination to be successful, than with enthusiasm, and, at the same time, takes pleasure in bestowing upon others the benefit of his own experience and efforts. Prof. Corby is, to a great extent, a self-made musician, which gives him an additional claim to confidence as a teacher, for he knows the difficulties of every successive step and the surest way of overcoming them. His kind disposition, which removes the sting of necessary correc- NOTRE DAME. 129 tion or reprimand, has long since rendered him a special favorite with his pupils and others. His presence at !N^otre Dame is a real sunshine. Thomas A. Cor^oi^n. Thomas A. Corcoran, was born in Montgomery county, Ohio, October 3d, 1843. His father was one of the oldest settlers of Dayton, O., but, previous to the birth of Mr. T. A. Corcoran, had removed to a farm in Montgomery county. Here Mr. Corcoran passed his early years, attending a common school in the vicinity of his father's farm, until 1858. At the age of fifteen, Mr. Corcoran entered College near Bardstown, Ky., where he remained nearl}^ three years. Eeturning from College in 1861, he accompanied his brother, Rev. E. P. Corcoran, who was at the time Chaplain to the 61st Regiment, O. Y. I. In what capac- ity Mr. Corcoran entered the army, I have not been able to ascertain, but I am nevertheless informed that during the time which he spent there he acted as army corres- pondent for one of the Cincinnati papers. After wit- nessing the campaigns of Fremont and Sigel in the Shenandoah Yalley, and of Pope in the Shenandoah and Virginia Yalleys, he returned to Cincinnati, O., and again entered College in Mount St. Mary's of the West, 9 130 UNIVERSITY OF where lie remained till the Collegiate Department was closed. In 1863, Mr. Corcoran entered the University of ^NTotre Dame, where he soon made himself popular, both with professors and students. In the Literary and Dramatic Societies, while he reaped advantage to himself, he con- tributed not a little to the advantage of his fellow-mem- bers and to the general entertainment. After nearly two years of assiduous application, Mr. Corcoran received in June, 1865, the degree of Bachelor of Arts. This degree was signed, through compliment, by Gen. W. T. Sherman, then visiting at the University. In August of the same year, Mr. Corcoran began the study of law, with Hon. J. E. Egly, in Cincinnati, O., and in l!Tovember, 1866, became Associate Editor of the Catholic Telegraphy which position he occupied till May, 1869, when he resigned with a view to devote himself exclusively to his profession. In June, 1867, he received the degree of A. M. At the Annual Commencement in June, 1868, Mr. Corcoran, at the request of Yery Rev. E. Sorin, and members of the Faculty, delivered the Oration of the day. In the following ]N"ovember, having completed his legal studies, Mr. Corcoran was admitted to the practice of law in the Courts of Ohio, and since that time, in addition to his editorial duties, has been practising law in Cincin- nati, Ohio. In October, 1868,, he delivered a fine and NOTRE DAME. 131 able lecture, in Canton, 0., on the " Common School System." Mr. Corcoran has already given evidence of consider- able ability for literary pursuits especially those of a serious nature, and there is little doubt that, if he made literature a profession he would be eminently succeessful. Edward JA. Brown. Edward M. Brown was born near Plattsburgh, in the State of New York, on the 8th day of December, 1843. His childhood passed without incident, beyond the or- dinary sports and pastimes of that age. At about the age of six or seven, however, he began to attend a coun- try school, close by his father's farm, and continued to do so till he had reached the age of nine years. At this time (1852) his family removed to Sandusky City, Ohio, where Mr. Brown again attended school for about five years, when he engaged in the store of his brother, David, who then did business in Sandusky. He continued in this occupation till his brother removed from Sandusky, when he returned to his father's house, and again at- tended school. In September, 1860, Mr. Brown entered the Univer- sity of l^otre Dame, well prepared by a good common school education to profit by the advantages afforded in this Institution. During his first year at College, he 132 UOTYERSITT OF applied himself to the study of the commercial branches, then nnder the direction of Rev. P. Dillon, and in June, 1861, received the degree of Master of Accounts. This had been the chief object for which he entered College, but his friends at Notre Dame, seeing that his talents were of no inferior order, advised him to pursue a thorough collegiate course. Accordingly, being seconded and aided pecuniarily, by his brother, Rev. P. H. Brown, of Ravenna, O., he returned in the following September, and entered upon the regular Collegiate Course. After four years more of assiduous application, he passed his examination for degrees, satisfactorily, and in June, 1865, received the degree of Bachelor of Arts. In June, 186Y, he received his second degree of Master of Arts. While in College, Mr. Brown was exceedingly popular with his fellow-students, taking a conspicuous part in all their amusements. Many still remember with pleasure Mr. Brown's frequent appearance on the (College) stage, where he, with his fellow-members of the Dramatic Society, contributed largely to the enjoy- ment of all. He also enjoyed the good- will and confi- dence of his teachers, not only as an earnest student, but especially as a young man of honor. In September, 1865, Mr. Brown commenced the study of law, in the office of Adams & Canfield, at Cleveland, O., where he continued till January, 1867 ; he then en- tered the office of Willy & Cary, in the same city, and there completed the prescribed course. In May, 1867, NOTRE Di3IE. 133 he was examined before the Supreme Court orf Ohio, in Columbus, and was admitted to practice in all the courts of the State of Ohio. He at once opened an office in Cleveland, where he practiced with unparalleled success till March, 1S6S, when he entered into equal partnership with George H. Safford, Esq., formerly Prosecuting At- torney for Huron county, O., and practiced under the firm name of Safford & Brown, until early in May, 1869, when he formed a new and more advantageous partnership with W. E. Lown, Esq., and is now prac- ticino- under the firm name of Brown & Lown. In January, 1869, he was duly admitted to practice in the United States Courts for the Northern District of Ohio, as Attorney, Counsellor, Solicitor, Proctor, and Advocate. AVith little worldly means, but with much natural energy of character, which sometimes faltered, but never fiiiled, because supported by a firm trust in that Providence which never deserts a man of upright will, Mr. Brown has pursued his noble ambition, till he now occupies a place among lawyers seldom attained by one so young. John C. Dunlap. John C. Dunlap was born in Louisville, Ky., March 31st, 1816, and received his first education in the schools of that place. Subsequently his parents re- 134 TJNIYERSITY OF moved to Chicago, 111., (at what time I do not know,) and from that city Mr. Dunlap came to E'otre Dame as a student in 1863. During the two years which he spent at I^otre Dame, for the purpose of completing his colle- giate studies, he enjoyed a wide popularity amongst his fellow-students, and besides, stood high in the estima- tion of his teachers. In 1865 he received the degree of Bachelor of Arts, at the Annual Commencement in Jnne, after which he returned to Chicago. Remaining some time in that city, he removed with his father to Salem Crossing, Ind., where he has since been engaged in business with his father. Mr. Dunlap is a young man of a mild and benevolent disposition, which renders his acquaintance acceptable to all, while his natural good sense and determined will, shield him from many of the weaknesses into which persons of snch a disposition are more Liable than others to fall. OL.A.SS OF 1866- Prof. William Jyers. Prof. William Ivers was born in 'New Haven, Con- necticut, on the 13th of ^November, 1839. While yet NOTKE DAME. 135 an infant, Prof. Ivers was taken by liis parents to Kew Orleans, Louisiana, where his father soon after died. Three years subsequently, his mother formed a second matrimonial alliance with a Mr. O'Connell. The family then removed to Iowa, where they purchased a farm about seventeen miles from the City of Dubuque, at a place called Bankstone. At that time churches were rare things in that region, and the house of Prof. Ivers' parents was frequently used as a chapel by the missionary priests who from time to time visited those parts. Prof. Ivers received his first education at the school attached to the present Cathedral in Dubuque, then conducted by a Mr. Brodie. Afterwards he attended the district schools at Bankstone Settlement, sometimes attending one, sometimes another, of the three schools in the vicinity of his parents' house, according to the reputation of the teachers. He was not considered very smart at first, but often puzzled his teachers by wanting to know the reasons of things — a considerable crime in the eyes of country school teachers twenty-five or thirty years ago. His inquiring mind, however, soon led him to examine things himself, and in a short time he stood at the head of all his classes. In 1851 his mother died, and in the following Sum- mer his uncle, Mr. Cornelius Sweeny, of Xew Orleans, took him to that city, where he attended school till 1853, in the mean time working his way up into the Principal's room. In 1853 he was taken by his uncle 136 UNIVERSITY OF to ISTotre Dame, where lie arrived in the month of Au- gust, a smart, rosy-cheeked boy of fourteen. For three years Prof. Ivers applied himself eagerly to study. At this time he conceived a desire of studying for the sacred ministry, and applied for admission into the Con- gregation of Holy Cross, where he was received in 1856, his companions being the Rev. Fathers Dillon, Yagnier, Sullivan, Carrol, and Prof Lyons. After some time he began to doubt his vocation, and left E"otre Dame for New Orleans, but returned to E'otre Dame, and engaged in teaching, in 1859, In the Autumn of '59 he was sent to Chicago, and taught in St. Mary's of the Lake, under the Rev. Father P. Dillon. In 1860 he went again to New Orleans, and traveled through the greater part of Texas. He returned to Chicago in 1861, and taught in the same College as before, but this time under the Rev. James Dillon. In the Summer of 1861, Prof. Ivers went to Philadelphia, Pa., and opened a select school in partnership with Prof Lewis, previously of JSTotre Dame University. He continued in this school till 1864, when he accepted a professorship of English in the "Real Schule Yerein," where he remained one year. In 1865 he made another trip to New Orleans, and in December of the same year returned to l^otre Dame, where he has since been engaged in teaching, chiefly Mathematics. At the suggestion of Rev. Father Dillon, then Presi- dent, Prof Ivers read up some subjects of the Collegiate NOTRE DAJVIE. 137 Course to which he had not previously given special at- tention, and in June, 1866, received the degree of Bach- elor of Arts, and in 1868 the second collegiate degree of Master of Arts. Having, myself, studied Mathematics under Prof. Ivers, I can safely say that I never met one who anticipated more readily the difficulties of his pupils, or removed them more effectually than he. Controlling his class, however large, without threats or punishments, he im- parted more knowledge, and enjoyed more fully the love and confidence of his pupils, than he otherwise could have done. All who know Prof. Ivers, will agree with me in say- ing that he is not only an able, though unassuming, scholar and excellent teacher, but also a pleasing com- panion, a true friend, and straightforward gentleman. Thomas A. Daly. Thomas A. Daly was born at Frenchpark, County Roscommon, Ireland, on the 21st of May, 1818. In ]^ovember of the same year his parents removed to the United States, and took up their abode in Rochester, ]Srew York, where they still reside. Up to the age of twelve, Mr, Daly attended the schools of that city, and laid the foundation of the superstructure which he built up afterwards at Notre Dame. 138 TJNIVEESITY OF In 1860, at the age of twelve, Mr. Daly entered tlie Junior Department of the University of ^N'otre Dame, where he distinguished himself for good behavior and studious application. In this department he spent about three years, when he was transferred to the Senior Department. After three years of industrious labor as a Senior, Mr. Daly completed his collegiate studies, and in June, 1866, received the degree of Bachelor of Arts. For two years after graduating, Mr. Daly traveled through the Eastern, Middle, and Western States, partly for information, and to recruit his health, considerably impaired by his close application to study during the last years of his College life, and partly on business con- nected with his father's pursuits. During this last year, however, Mr. Daly has entered upon the study of Medicine, which he proposes to make his life profession. He is at present studying with Law- rence McKay, M. D., in the City of Rochester, JN^ew York. While at College, Mr. Daly was highly esteemed by his companions, for his many amiable qualities, and was looked upon by most of his teachers as a favorite pupil. The sterling qualities which won for him this esteem and confidence, while a boy, will be, next to actual ability, his highest recommendations in the important profession which he has adopted. NOTRE DAME. 139 John J. Carlin. John J". CarKn was born in the City of Chicago, Illi- nois, on the -ith day of February, 18tt9. When of a proper age to do so, he attended the public scliools of his native city, aad displayed such ability even at that tender age, that his father, Mr. Philip Carlin, deter- mined to give him the advantages of a thorough College education. Accordingly, in 1861, being then in his twelfth year, Mr. John Carlin was sent to E"otre Dame University, and entered the Junior Department of that Institution. His progress here was in keeping with his early indica- tions of talent, and, after two years, he was transferred to the Senior Department. This change gave a new impetus to his zeal for study, and after three years more of earnest labor, Mr. Carlin finished his course creditably, and received the degree of Bachelor of Arts, in June, 1866, being at the time but a little more than seventeen years of age ; two years later, he received his second degree of Master of Arts. In October, 1867, Mr. Carlin began the study of Med- icine at Rush Medical College in Chicago, 111., and after attending two courses of lectures at that Institution, en- tered the Medical Department of the Catholic University of Dublin, Ireland, where he is at present preparing 14:0 UNIYEESITT OP himself for tlie responsible profession wMcli he has chosen. Mr. Carlin possesses a naturally acute and well-devel- oped mind, and when he has completed his medical studies, he will be a physician on whose judgment the afflicted may rely with confidence. Mr. Carlin is, with one exception, the youngest (at the time of graduating) who ever received degrees at Notre Dame. John Kruhl. John Kruhl is a German by birth, and made part of his collegiate studies in his native land. In 1864 he came as a student to the University of JNTotre Dame. Of his previous history I have been unable to ascertain anything definite. While at Notre Dame, he enjoyed the reputation of being a careful and industrious stu- dent. After two years' study, Mr. Kruhl completed his studies, and received, at the Annual Commencement in June, 1866, the degree of Bachelor of Arts. Aft-er grad- uation, he taught in the Preparatory Department at Notre Dame for one session, after which he went to some part of Pennsylvania ; and although I have made efforts to discover his whereabouts, or to obtain some information of him since his departure from Notre Dame, I have failed. NOTRE DAME. 141 Di^ John Cassidy. • Dr. John Cassidy, the first graduate in the scientific course at l^otre Dame, was born on the 21st of May, 18-i3, at Linden, Michigan. Having obtained the bene- fits of a common school education, his mind, as all noble minds do, craved something more, and he accordingly entered Union Seminary at Ypsilanti, Michigan, to pre- pare himself for college. In 1861, Mr. Cassidy entered the University of Xotre Dame, applying himself to the study of the sciences, especially the natural sciences, at the same time follow- ing the commercial course. In June, 1862, he received the degree of Master of Accounts, after which he con- tinued his scientific studies, with earnestness and deter- mination, till June, 1865, when he received the degree of Bachelor of Science, the first ever conferred by this University. Mr. Cassidy entered immediately upon the study of medicine, having as his first preceptor Rev. L. ]N"eyron, who had accompanied, as surgeon and physician, the first Napoleon through all his campaigns, and who has been for several years the resident physician at the University of I^otre Dame. Subsequently, Mr. Cassidy studied with Dr. Meyers, of South Bend, Ind. In 1866-7, Mr. Cassidy attended the course of lectures in the Medical Department of the University of Michi- 142 UNIVEESITT OF gan, then directed by Dr. M. Gunn. In 1867-8, lie at- tended the medical course at Knsh Medical College, in Chicago, 111., whither he followed Dr. Gunn, who had made an engagement in this latter college. In 1868, Mr. Cassidy received his diploma as Doctor in Medicine, and was admitted as a member of the " As- sociated Alumni of Rush Medical College." Dr. Cassidy is now practising in partnership with D. Meyers, of South Bend, Ind., and is rising daily in the estimation of this community, both in a social and pro- fessional point of Adew. This is as it ought to be ; for Dr. Cassidy is a gentleman in the true sense of the word, and possesses mental abilities which must com- mand universal respect. CXjJ^&S of 1867- JOHN A. P'CONNELL. John A. O'Connell was born in the city of E'ew York, on the 20th of September, 1850, and up to the age of twelve pursued his elementary education under the care- ful direction of his pious parents. In 1862, Mr. O'Connell entered the University of !Notre Dame, where he astonished all by the wonderful maturity of mind which he exhibited at that tender age. NOTRE DAME. 143 For five years lie continued to apply himself to study with the same quiet determination with which he had begun, and in June, 1867, graduated with distinction, receiving the degree of Bachelor of Arts about three months before he had reached his seventeenth birth day. Mr. O'Connell was the youngest, at the time of graduat- ing, of all those who have received degrees at Notre Dame. But, though young in years, he was old in mind, and handled questions of philosophy with the skill of a ripe intellect. After graduating, Mr. O'Connell entered the congre- gation of Holy Cross as a candidate for the sacred min- istry, and at the close of his year's novitiate began his preparation for that high calling. He is now applying himself earnestly to the difficult but important study of theology, and at the same time teaches the preparatory classes of Greek and Latin in the University. Mr. O'Connell is not yet a professed member of the congregation of Holy Cross, being still too young to make his profession, yet there is reason to believe that he will do so when he arrives at the proper age. And if the past and the present can be taken as an index of the future, he will be a very efficient member, and do his full share to advance the education of youth, the chief object of this congregation. 144 TNIYERSITT OP Mai^in Connolly. Martin Connolly is a native of Ireland, and was born on the 20tli of I^ovember, 1845. With a good prepara- tory education, he entered college in his native land, in 1863, with a view to pnrsue a thorough course, and com- plete his studies in the Roman Catholic College at May- nooth. He had already entered the preparatory semin- ary, but Rev. Father M. Mullen, late of Chicago, 111., having resigned, in 1865, the directorship of that estab- lishment, an interruption of studies resulted, and Mr. Connolly removed to the United States, coming directly to Il^otre Dame, where he entered as a student. In two years Mr. Connolly completed his studies, and received, in June, 1867, the degree of Bachelor of Arts. After one year passed as a novice in the congregation of Holy Cross, Mr. Connolly concluded that his vocation was not for a community life, and determined to become one of the secular clergy. With this intention he entered the Theological Semin- ary, at Milwaukee, Wis., where he is at present, pursu- ing his theological studies. Mr. Connolly possesses many of those natural and religious qualifications which characterize the true clergyman, and should he persevere in his calling and become a clergyman, there is every reason to believe that he will be a good and useful one. NOTEE DAME. 145 AuGUSTiN ^. Tammany f. J. Angiistin E. Tammany was born at Bellefonti, Center county, Pennsylvania, in October, 1846. Up to the age of sixteen, be attended school at his native place, and became proficient in all the branches taught in the com- mon schools. In 1862, he entered St. Mary's College, at Wilmington, Delaware, where he remained one year. In 1863 he entered the University of IN'otre Dame, where he soon won the friendship and esteem of all, which he ever afterwards retained. After four years of unremitting industry Mr. Tam- many completed his collegiate studies, and graduated with distinction, in June, 1867, receiving the degree of Bachelor of Arts. His success was applauded by all, though his departure from xsTotre Dame occasioned only regret. On leaving l^otre Dame, Mr. Tammany entered upon the study of law, in the office of S. R. Peal, Esq., of Lockhaven, Penn., and had been reading but a short time, when he was accidentally killed, on the 18th of September, 1867, in a railroad accident near Elmira, ]^. Y. ; thus crushing the fond hopes of his relatives and friends, who took a just pride in him, on account of his exemplary life, and real talent and goodness. Though he has passed away from earth, his memory will long remain fresh with his friends and former classmates at IS'otre Dame. 10 146 uniyeesity of John Bleckmann. John Bleckmann was born at Cincinnati, Ohio, on the 6th of April, 1846. At the age of fifteen he entered St. Xavier's College, in his native city, where he re- mained till 1866, when he was received as a candidate for the sacred ministry by the Right Rev. Dr. Luers, Bishop of Fort Wayne, and sent to Notre Dame to com- plete his collegiate studies. He entered the graduating class on his arrival at Notre Dame, and having passed a successful examination, received the degree of Bachelor of Arts at the Annual Commencement in June, 1867. On graduating, he was sent to St. Mary's Theological Seminary in Cincinnati, O., where he still is, pm^suing his theological studies under the direction of the Rev. Dr. Pabish. Although not intimately acquainted with Mr. Bleck- mann, my recollections of him are of the pleasantest kind, and represent him to me as a talented, kind, ener- getic, and yet unassuming young man. Anthony IVLessman. Anthony Messman is a native of Steinfeld, in the Grand Duchy of Oldenburg, Germany, and was born on the 11th of December, 1839. Up to his fifteenth NOTRE DAME. 147 year, lie attended school in his native parish, and after- wards aided his father in the cultivation of his farm. At the age of twenty, Mr. Messman removed to the United States, and settled in Cincinnati, Ohio, where, in 1862, he entered St. Xavier's College, and applied liini- eelf earnestly to study for four years. At this time (1866) he was received by Kt. Rev. Dr. Luers, of Fort Wayne, Ind., as a candidate for the ministry, and sent to jS'otre Dame to complete his studies in Philosophy. This he accomplished in one year, and in June, 1867, received the degree of Bachelor of Arts. In the following year, Mr. Messman entered the The- ological Seminary at Cincinnati, O., as a student for the Right Rev. Bishop of Fort Wayne, and is still pursuing his studies there. Mr. Messman is a young man of much natural ability and studious habits ; never afraid of labor when a worthy object is to be attained. Such men are sure to succeed. Petei^ M.. Dechant. Peter M. Dechant was born in Franklin, O., on the 30th of August, 1818, and received his elementary edu- cation in his native place. In September, 1863, he entered the University of l^otre Dame, and applied himself with earnestness to the study of the sciences. After four years of assiduous 148 UNIVERSITY OF labor, lie passed his examination for degrees, success- fully, and was graduated a Bachelor of Science, at the Annual Commencement in June, 1867. In the following October, Mr. Dechant entered upon the study of Law in Dayton, O., where he still con- tinues, preparing himself for the important profession which he has adopted. Mr. Dechant proved, while at l^otre Dame, a student of more than ordinary ability, especially in Mathematics and Logic. He was sociable, and hence popular with his schoolfellows, though his natural disposition inclined him rather to study and thoughtfulness than to sports. Mr. Dechant is a young man who can be relied upon, once he has pledged his word to do anything : for he makes up his mind carefully, and then goes ahead in the execution of his resolution, till he has either suc- ceeded, or found out why he must fail. We anticipate for him a successful and useful, if not brilliant, career. Joseph D. M.cKernan. Joseph D. McKernan, a graduate in the Scientific Course, entered the University of ISTotre Dame in 1863, and applied himself earnestly to his studies, with one interruption, until June, 1867, when he received the de- gree of Bachelor of Science. Mr. McKernan's career at IS^otre Dame was creditable NOTRE DAME. 149 to himself, both as regards his studies and his moral standing. Since his departure from College, we have not heard directly from him, and our efforts to obtain some facts connected with his early years have not been successful. We have heard indirectly, however, that he is at present interested in railroad affairs at his native place, Indianapolis, Ind., and we doubt not his scientific knowledge, when brought into full play by some practical experience, will win him a high position among railroad men. CI^^^SS OF 1868. William T. Johnson. William T. Johnson was born at Oseola, St. Clair Co., Missouri, on the 4th day of August, 1848. His early years passed in happiness amid the delightful scenes of his southern home. But amid these home enjoyments, Mr. Johnson did not neglect the opportunities afforded him of cultivating and improving his mind, and so fruit- ful were his efforts in this respect, that he entered the University of ISTotre Dame in 1866, not only thoroughly versed in the common school branches, but also consider- ably advanced in his classical studies. Mr. Johnson remained at Notre Dame, as a student 150 UI^IVERSITT OF two years, during wliicli time he completed his collegiate studies, and received the degree of Bachelor of Arts at the Annual Commencement, in June, 1868, and with it the Premium of Honor for that year. During his last year at College, Mr. Johnson made the Claims of the Catholic Church the object of special study, and having satisfied his mind that they were well founded, sought admission into that Chnrch, and is now a sincere Catholic. After graduating at ISTotre Dame, Mr. Johnson entered the University of Michigan, but remained there only five months, after which he returned to Notre Dame and en- gaged as a teacher in the preparatory department. His success thus far has been highly satisfactory, and should he continue in this profession, there is no question that he will ere long attain a high position. Thomas Naughton. Thomas ]N"aughton was born in the County Limerick, Ireland, in 1840, (I have been unable to ascertain the precise date). His parents removed to the United States when he was thirteen years of age, and settled at Chicopee, Mass. Having already acquired a thorough common school education, Mr. l^aughton entered one of the eastern Colleges (I do not know which one) in 1857, where he remained till 1859, when ho entered NOTRE DAIklE. 151 the University of !N'otre Dame. Here lie remained dur- ing tliree sessions, completing tlie entire course, except Philosoplij. He was, however, obliged to interrupt his studies, in consequence of ill-health, and made a trip to Europe, where he remained about two years. On his return from Europe he lived with his father, assisting him in the cultivation of his farm, and reviewing his former studies. During this time he also read a course of Philosophy with a competent private tutor, and on presenting satisfactory proof of this fact, received in June, 1858, the degree of Bachelor of Arts. Some time previous to this he had entered the Univer- sity of Albany, ]^. Y., as a student of law, and after a thorough course of reading graduated in the law in May, 1869. He intended, when I last heard of him, to open an office either at Springfield or Chicopee, Mass., but up to that time had not done so. Mr. Naughton, though not blessed with good physical health, has yet much energy of mind, and is capable of accomplishing a great deal. He will make a very effi- cient member of the bar, and is, moreover, a most relia- ble young man. James E. JVLcBi^de. James E. McBride was born on the 16th day of T^o- vember, 184:6, at Woodville, Sandusky Co., Ohio. His 152 TNIVEKSITT OF early years were spent in "rural bliss" upon his father's farm, near Woodville, where he attended school during the winter season of each year till he was nineteen. In 1865, Mr. McBride entered the University of JSTotre Dame, thoroughly versed in the branches usually taught in the public schools, and after three years of studious application to the higher branches of the sciences, re- ceived the degree of Bachelor of Science at the Annual Commencement in June, 1868. While at ISTotre Dame, Mr. McBride was a general favorite, and took an active part, within his sphere, in all movements connected with the interests of the College and his fellow students, but especially distinguished him- self as a member of the St. Edward's Literary Associa- tion, and as one of the editors of the Scholastic Year. In October, 1868, Mr. McBride entered the law office of Messrs. Baker & Collins, in Toledo, Ohio, where he continues to apply himself industriously to the study of his favorite profession, though he has already made arrangements to go to Europe this summer, to continue his study, and at the same time enjoy the advantages of foreign travel. Mr. McBride possesses those intellectual and physical endowments which are the elements of success, and we look forward to the time when he will -plaj an important part in the legal profession, and also in society at large. NOTRE DAME. 153 E. S. PlLLAI^. E. S. Pillars was born at Tiffin, Ohio, on the 2Tth of April, 1850. His early education was received at home under the immediate supervision of his parents, and at the age of eleven he entered the preparatory department of Heidelburg College, where he remained three years. In 1864 he was admitted into the Classical DejDartment in the same College, and went through the freshman, sophomore, and part of the junior years, when circum- stances made it necessary for him to leave College for a time. Kot wishing to enter a lower class in the same school, as he would have been obliged to do if he return- ed, Mr. Pillars directed his steps to Xotre Dame, where he entered as a student in February, 1867, well advanced in his studies. He applied himself to the scientific branches especially, and in June, 1868, had completed the prescribed course. Passing a satisfactory examination, he received the degree of Bachelor of Science, being then in his 18th year. It will give a good notion of Mr. Pillars' persevering industry to state that, notwithstanding the interruption of his studies, previous to entering at IS'otre Dame, he made such use of his time and of the superior advantages afibrded at this University, that he graduated on the same day as his former class mates at Heidelburg. "While at Kotre Dame, Mr. Pillars was an active mem- 154: UNIVERSITY OF ber of different associations, literary, mnsical, etc., and enjoyed that chief ambition of the student, popularity, which we consider but a foretaste of that still greater popularity which he will yet enjoy in the legal profes- sion, for which lie is now preparing himself, in the law office of Francis Baker, Esq., in Tiffin, 0. Indeed, we trust and believe he will be an important Pillar in the legal edifice. Edward T. Von Donhoff. Edward T. Yon Donhoff was born at Louisville, Ken- tucky, on the 4th of August, 1850. Up to the age of thirteen he studied at home, under the careful super- vision of his parents, and at thirteen entered the High School of his native city, where he continued till 1867, when he entered the University of l^otre Dame. Here he applied himself for one year to the completing of the scientific course, and at the same time studied medicine under Rev. L. Neyron, the resident physician, and Prof, of Anatomy and Physiology. In June, 1868, Mr. Donhoff received his degree of Bachelor of Science, and also a certificate in the Medi- cal Class. Since his graduation at JSTotre Dame, Mr. Donhofi' has been attending the Kentucky School of Medicine, and although not yet granted his diploma of M. D., is permitted to practice (under instructions) at the Louisville Marine Hospital. NOTRE DAME. 155 Mr. Donhoff is a joung man of mucli practical good sense, and, with a careful study of medicine, will un- questionably make an excellent physician. HONORARY GRADUATES. Hon. David L. Gregg. Hon. David L. Gregg, on invitation from the Faculty of the University of l^otre Dame, pronounced the Ora- tion of the day, at the Annual Commencement in 184:9. Mr. Gregg was then a rising man, and battling for that position in life which he knew he was able to filh The Faculty, recognizing his real worth and yet undiscov- ered ability, and wishing to give him a mark of their esteem, conferred upon him the honorary degree of Doctor of Laws. Mr. Gregg has since filled important offices in the Government, having been at one time a Foreign Minis- ter, at another Consul. He resides at present at the Sandwich Islands, as far as I have been able to ascer- tain. His constant absence in distant parts has pre- vented Mr. Gregg from coming into intimate relations with Kotre Dame, and my efforts to obtain the particu- lars of his history have been fruitless. Yet it is with pleasure we place him among the members of the Asso- ciated Alumni of ^otre Dame. 156 UNIVERSITY OF Gardnei\^ Jones. Gardner Jones first appeared as a Professor at l^otre Dame in 1849, presiding over the Departments of Klieto- ric and Constitutional Law. The President and Facnltj of the University, recognizing his surpassing ability and learning, conferred upon him, in June, 1849, the honor- ary degree of Doctor of Laws. Shortly after this, he disconnected himself with the University and re-entered the field of journalism, in which he had previously gained an extensive reputation. He, however, returned to Notre Dame in 1852, and taught during another year, and again left the Professor's chair for the editorial sanc- tum. But the common destroyer laid his hand upon him, and he passed to another and, we hope, a happier life. We have not, at present, any materials from which to make a becoming sketch of this departed genius, but the mention of his name will give rise to noble thoughts in many minds. Denis O'Leary. Denis O'Leary was born in County Cork, Ireland, some time in 1798. At an early age, he manifested so decided a taste for classical learning that his parents sent NOTEE DAME. 157 him to a school in Killarney — a rare privilege for a boy at that time in Ireland. Here he made such progress that he was selected, out of a large number of competi- tors, as a candidate for the College at Maynooth, where he entered Avhen but eight years old. At Maynooth, he completed a full course of ecclesiastical studies, with a view to preparing himself for the sacred ministry ; but, as he developed into manhood, he felt himself called to a different sphere of usefulness, and, resuming the study of Greek, Latin and Hebrew, prepared himself for the then important duties of a classical teacher. Seeing the great benefits that would result to religion, in that age of penal laws and religious intolerance, from a good classical school, in which candidates for the min- istry might be prepared for entrance into the Seminary without exciting the attention of government spies, Mr. O'Leary opened such a school at Kanturk, where his merits as a teacher were soon recognized, and his school largely patronized by the Bishops of Ireland. So inti- mately, too, did he feel the importance of his work, that he was frequently heard to remark that, although he had abandoned his original design of becoming a priest, he felt that he was doing quite as acceptable a work in the sight of God and one quite as useful to the Church. This will account for that enthusiasm as a teacher ever displayed by Mr. O'Leary, and to which many students of ISTotre Dame can bear testimony. For thirty years, Mr. O'Leary pursued his favorite 158 UNIVEESITY OF calling in that obscnre town ; but his reputation as a teacher was by no means bounded by its limits, and students flocked to him from all quarters. He believed however, that aspirants to the sanctuary had most claim upon his labors, and to their training he devoted himself with a special zeal. Many a youthful candidate for the ministrj'jwliose want of means would have been a serious obstacle to the execution of his design, received gratuitous aid from this generous teacher, and many now, both in the United States and in other countries, who are doing successfully the work of God in the exercise of the min- istry, can testify that to his generous aid they owe the first ray of hope which dawned upon their pious aspira- tions. With such a disposition, and considering the condition of the Irish people, financially, at that time, it is not to be wondered at that Mr. O'Leary was not a cent wealthier at the end of thirty years' labor than he was at its begin- ning. But his duty to his family now obliged him to change his course somewhat, and, finding it impossible to do so in his native land, he removed to the United States in 1852. On his arrival, he at once engaged as a teacher of mathematics and the English branches in the Convent of the Sacred Heart, at Manhattan ville, J^ew York, where he remained one year. But his favorite study was the classics, and, a vacancy occurring at that time in this department of the University of IS'otre Dame, Mr. O'Leary accepted the position, and filled it, KOTRE DAME. 159 witli credit to himself and profit to others, for two years. In 1854, the University conferred upon him the collegi- ate degree of Master of Arts, in consideration both of his attainments and of his superior ability as a teacher. Family affairs now called him to New York, where he remained one year, in tlie meantime tilling the position of a teacher at St. John's College, Fordham. In 1857, he returned to ]^otre Dame for another year, at the close of which he returned to J^ew York a second time and engaged as a teacher with the Christian Brothers of that city. His time was divided between the De LaSalle Institute and Manhattan College, and, although these institutions are widely separated and his age at the time was far advanced, he was always punctual at his post whether in storm or in sunshine. The results of his teaching in Manhattan College were speedily manifested in the high character which the classes under his control soon attained in classical profi- ciency, and even now the pupils of that College who enjoyed the advantages of his instruction have distin- guished themselves in various departments and remember his name with the same gratitude and esteem as those of Notre Dame. Mr. O'Leary passed away from the scenes of his labors and usefulness on the 14:th of February, 1865, in the sixty-seventh year of his age. His death is supposed to have been the result of too close an attention to duty, whatever the exposure it required. 160 UinVEESITT OF Mv. O'Leary's character was pre-eminently that of a simple man, unversed in the wiles and wickedness of the world, who knew no other motive to exertion than that of duty or the prompting of a generous heart. He loved his profession, and, though sixty-seven years had marked their passage on his venerable brow, the marks were comparatively light, and the freshness of his appearance before his death would have induced one to believe that he was much younger than he really was. May he enjoy in heaven the full reward of his devotedness to duty. Gen. William F. Lynch. General William F. Lynch was born at Rochester, I^ew York, in March, 1839. At about the age of six or seven years, he was taken by his parents to Cuba, 'New York, w^here he attended school for the first time. Sub- sequently, he removed to Elgin, Illinois, where his par- ents still reside. In 1858, he came to E'otre Dame as a student, and was elected Captain of the military company then existing at that institution and known as the Conti- nental Cadets. In the drill of this company. General Lynch displayed not only a thorough knowledge of the military drill but also a natural genius and taste for the military life, which are necessary to the true soldier. He continued as a student (and Captain) till 1861, KOTRE DAME. 161 when be was engaged as a teacher in the Preparatory Department of the University ; and, while fulfilling his important duties as such, he prosecuted his own higher studies. The voice of war, however, sounded and he could not resist. In February, 1862, he entered the army with the " three months' men," and was appointed Sergeant-Ma.]or. He afterwards raised a regiment, by direction of Governor Yates, of Illinois, and was duly commissioned Colonel of the same. He did heroic service in many warm engagements, especially at Fort Donaldson, where he armed his men with muskets refused by another regiment as useless, and with these weapons he led his regiment the first within the enemy's lines. He was also in the engagement of Pittsburgh Landing, where he was taken prisoner and detained for about one year; he was then exchanged, and immediately entered upon duty. He was engaged in the celebrated Meridian Raids and at the battle of Corinth, and afterwards went with General A. J. Smith's corps to relieve Banks on the Red River. During this expedition, he acted as Brigadier. He had been fre- quently wounded, but in the action at Yellow Bayou was so seriously wounded that he had to be removed to the hospital at Yicksburg. General Lynch was one of the last recommended to the Senate by His Excellency Presi- dent Lincoln for promotion, and on this recommendation, justified by his valor and self-sacrificing patriotism, he was brevetted a Brigadier-General, 11 162 TTNIVEESITT OF In 1864, while commanding at Springfield, Illinois, General Lynch married Miss Jnlia Clifford, and is now the father of an interesting, though not very numerous, family. At the close of the war, General Lynch was promoted to the rank of Captain in the regular army, and, although his wound has left him a cripple for life, he has con- stantly been on duty since. The Faculty of the University of Kotre Dame, wishing to bestow upon him some mark of their appreciation of his noble patriotism, at the annual commencement in 1865 conf-erred upon him the honorary degree of Bache- lor of Arts. Instances of General Lynch's bravery might be multi- plied to an indefinite extent, but these will be written in the history of the country. Paul Bidder, Ji^ Paul Broder, Jr., received his primary education in Beloit, Wisconsin, where his family have resided since he was quite young. He subsequently went to Union College, Schenectady, 'New York, where he completed a full collegiate course, and graduated in June of 1862. In February, 1863, he engaged as a teacher of Latin and Greek at the University of l^otre Dame, Indiana, where lie remained till 1867. At the Annual Commencement NOTKE DAME. 163 in 1865 lie received from this University the honor- ary degree of Bachelor of Arts. In 1867, the death of some of his family called him into active life, and he has since been engaged in busi- ness at Beloit. While at IS'otre Dame, Professor Broder enjoyed a general reputation for scholarly acquirements, and won the confidence and esteem of his pupils. Of his life pre- vious to his engagement at iSTotre Dame and since his departure, I have been unable to ascertain anything definite, beyond what I have stated — a failure which I regret, as I would like to give a more complete sketch of this gentleman. Daniel M.. M. Collins. Daniel M. M. Collins was a student at Xotre Dame in 1859 and '60, and previously, and had completed the greater portion of the Collegiate course when circum- stances occurred which oblis^ed him to leave CoUeo^e, though with a hope of returning again. This liope, however, was never realized, and Mr. Collins entered upon the hard realities of life, yet young. Pie worked manfully, and in spite of all obstacles mastered the principles of Law, the profession of which he had select- ed as his occupation for life, and finally won for himself a position among lawyers. IN'otre Dame, ever watchful 164 TJOTYEESITT OF of the interests of her students even after thej have de- parted from her halls, wishing to show her appreciation of his manly exertions and to encourage him to further efforts in the path of distinction, conferred upon him, at the Commencement in June, 1868, the honorary degree of Bachelor of Arts. Mr. Collins is at present engaged in the practice of his profession in Philadelphia, Pa., and will soon stand if not at the head of his profession, at least in the front ranks among lawyers. Oi^iLLE T. Chamberlain. Orville T. Chamberlain was born at Leesburgh, Kos- ciusko Co., Indiana, on the 1st day of September, 1841. At the age of two years he was taken by his parents to Elkhart, Indiana, where he has since resided. In 1860 he entered the University of Notre Dame, well prepared by an unusually thorough common school education. In June, 1861, after a thorough drilling in the Commercial Department, under the late Rev. P. Dillon, Mr. Cham- berlain received the degree of Master of Accounts. After another year spent in the study of the higher Eng- lish branches and the Classics, Mr. Chamberlain return- ed home, and twelve days afterwards, yielding to the prompting of his patriotic heart, enlisted as a private in the 74:th Regt. Indiana Yol. Infantry. NOTKE DAME. 165 His fearless bravery and his intelligent promptitude in the discharge of his duty, soon attracted the attention of the officers of his regiment, and he was in a short time promoted to the command of his company. The confi- dence reposed in him hy his superior officers, was evi- denced by the unsolicited tender of various desirable and lucrative positions outside his regiment; but, actuated by a magnanimous and self-forgetting regard for duty, manifested only by the truly noble. Captain Chamber- lain declined all these offers that he might the better serve the command with which he had at first identified himself. During the greater part of his service Captain Chani- berhiin performed at once the various duties of Company Commander, Regimental Adjutant, Sergeant Major and Judge Advocate of General Court Martial of Division. And this he did without clerk or orderly to assist him, in either capacity, and a reference to the archives of the Reoriment will show that what he did was well done. At the close of the war Captain Chamberlain returned to his home, and entered upon the study of the law, and in May, 1867, was duly admitted to the practice of his chosen profession, and opened an office in Elkhart, Ind. Since his return to civil life. Captain Chamberlain was tendered a first lieutenancy in the regular army, but be- lieving that, "now the w^ar is over," he could best serve his country in a civil capacity, he declined this ofi'er, as he had done many others, of a similar nature. 166 TJNIYEESITY OF At the Annual Commencement in June, 1868, the Faculty of the University of ]N"otre Dame, wishing to show their appreciation of Captain Chamberlain's disin- terested patriotism and of his excellent qualities as a man of honor and ability, conferred upon him the hon- orary degree of Bachelor of Arts. "While a student at I^otre Dame, Captain Chamberlain distinguished himself in classes, in the literary and dra- matic societies, and in the play ground, for energy, cheer- fulness, and a scrupulous regard for the feelings of all. ISTow in all matters affecting the public good, he takes advanced and decided positions, and his social position and recognized ability gives his influence its due weight. From what we know of his character and from his suc- cess thus far, we feel justified in predicting his rapid rise in his profession, and we, furthermore, feel satisfied that he will continue to maintain the reputation which he now deservedly enjoys for integrity, ability and energy. John jP. Lauth. John P. Lauth having pursued at IS^otre Dame a pret- ty thorough course of study from 1864 to 1867, and yet having been obliged to discontinue before he had com- plied with the requirements for graduating, afterwards so worked his way in an educational point of view, as to justify the Faculty of the University of jS"otre Dame in NOTRE DAME. 167 conferring upon him the honorary degree of Bachelor of Arts at the Annual Commencement, in June, 1868. Mr. Lauth is at present engaged as a professor at the select school of Prof. Beleke, and also at the Commer- cial College of Bryant and Stratton, in Chicago, 111. I regret that I have been unable to obtain any particulars respecting Mr. Lauth's early years, and that I am thus prevented from giving as complete a sketch as I would have wished to do, yet I feel satisfied that Mr. Lauth will write his own history on the age in which he lives. John Fitzgibbon. John Fitzgibbon was born in the County Tipperary, Ireland, on the 12th of May, 1837, and up to his seven- teenth year, profited, as far as circumstances would per- mit, by the advantages afibrded in the schools of his native land. In 1854 he came to the United States, entirely dependent on his own resources. He entered bravely into the battle of life, believing with Socrates that " all labor is honorable ;" and hence he applied himself earnestly to whatever occupation circumstances offered as a means of obtaining an honest livelihood. Amid the distractions of business, however, he did not forget that his parents had intended giving him a college education, but were prevented from doing so by the un- expected death of his father. Accordingly Mr. Fitzgib- 168 UNIVERSITY OF aiy bon connected himself with the Literal y ' '. Associations of the place in which he resi. cin- nati, O.,) determined to carry out as far as yi the intentions of his parents. In 1858, having maao ar- rangements conformable with his means, he came to the University of ]^otre Dame, where he remained, with some brief interruptions, till 1862. During this time he proved himself an energetic student, and became distin- guished as a member of the St. Aloysius Literary and Historical Society, the Vice Presidency of which he held for some time. He thus continued to pursue his object energetically, but was called away by circumstances be- fore he had completed the required course of studies. Afterwards, however, amid the distracting scenes of bu- siness he did not forget to continue the intellectual labor begun at l!^otre Dame, and that Institution wishing to show its appreciation of the good use which Mr. Fitz- gibbon made of the lessons received while in her halls, conferred upon him the honorary degree of Bachelor of Arts, at the Annual Commencement in June, 1868. Mr. Fitzgibbon is at present engaged in business in the city of Chicago, 111., and is still making his way gradually up the hill of knowledge. He was lately elected President of the Irish Literary Society of Chica- go, 111., and maintains among his educated countrymen the reputation he won at Notre Dame for energy, ability and uprightness of character. NOTRE DAME. 169 ELECTED MEMBERS. Rey. Petei^ p. Cooney. Rev. Peter P. Cooney was born in the County Ros- common, Ireland, in 1832, and at the age of four years was taken to the United States by his parents, who took up their residence near Monroe, Michigan. There Father Cooney enjoyed all the advantages of the com- mon schools of the time, and prepared himself for Col- lege. In 1851 he entered the University of j^otre Dame, Ind., where he remained for tliree years in the vigorous pursuit of knowledge. In 1851: he entered St. Mary's Theological Seminary at Baltimore, Maryland, where he remained four years as a student of theology. In 1858 he returned to jS"otre Dame and joined the Con- gregation of Holy Cross, in which he was ordained priest in July, 1859. Although Father Cooney made a 'full Collegiate Course, he never applied for his degrees, feeling that the dignity of the ministry was ''honor enough for one man." But on the organization of the " Associated Alumni of Kotre Dame," he was by unan- imous consent declared a member. After his ordination in 1859, Father Cooney was ap- pointed Yice President of the University of St. Mary's of the Lake, Chicago, 111., in which responsible position 170 TJNIVEESITY OF he continued for two years', when, hearing that applica- tion had been made to Father Sorin for a priest to act as Chaplain to the Thirty-fifth Keg. Ind. Yols., Father Cooney offered his services to his country, through Father Sorin, his superior, and on the 4th of October, 1861, was regularly commissioned Chaplain of the Irish Regiment. Father Cooney fulfilled the duties of Chaplain in the Union army for nearly four years, and as the limits of our sketch will not permit a review of his labors during that time, we refer to the "Indiana's EoU of Honor," page 561 to 568, et jpassim^ where his career in the army is clearly described. Soon after the close of the war. Father Cooney was appointed to replace Father Corby as Pastor of St. Pat- rick's Church, South Bend, Ind., where he has till the present time labored with all the energy of his energetic nature, for the spiritual welfare of that interesting congregation. Father Cooney is one of those indescribable charac- ters who combine with the serious zeal and piety of the true clergyman, a keen sense of humor and sj)arkling wit, which call up a laugh at the right time and attract the attention of all without appearing in the least obtru- sive. KOTRE DAME. 171 Rev. Thomas L. Vagnier^ Eev. Thomas L. Yagnier was born at jS'ew France, near Fort AYajne, Incl, on the 22d of March, 1839. While he was yet a child, his parents removed to the vicinity of IS'otre Dame, Ind., and np to the age of six- teen he attended the classes of the University, beginning in the Minim Department and passing through the vari- ous grades as he advanced in years. In 1855, Father Yao^nier entered the ConoTCo-ation of Holy Cross as a candidate for the sacred ministiy, and was employed as a teacher in the preparatory depart- ment, at the same time prosecuting his own higher studies. Mathematics and the physical sciences were his favorite studies, and his progress in them was astonish- ing. In 185T he was appointed Prof, of Chemistry and Physics in the University, and with one or two brief in- terruptions has occupied that position till the present time. In 1867 he was ordained priest. Father Yagnier is a man of no ordinary ability, and his acquirements, in his particular sphere, are in keeping with his abilities, while his frequent excursions into other spheres has enabled him to amass an extensive store of general knowledge. Yet he seldom appears in as fa- vorable a light as his acquirements would indicate, owing chiefly to the fact that his idea of a scholar is of such an exalted nature that he always feels an undue diffidence 172 TJ]^fIVERSITY OF in his own abilities, and is tlms prevented from exposing to others the rich stores of his mind. Father Yagnier never applied for degrees, yet he has for a number of years been considered in the same light as a graduate, having studied more than the required branches, and at the first regular meeting of the Alumni he was unanimously declared a member, in virtue of his superior merits as a scholar and professor. Written by A. J. S. Rev. Joseph C. Carriei^ Rev. Joseph Celestine Carrier was born July 14th, 1833, at St. Joire, a small town in France, near the confines of Switzerland, and the beautiful city of Geneva. On his father's side he is descended from an ancient and respectable family of Franche-Comte ; his mother's family were the Canelli of Milan. He was the youngest of ten children, and his father is still living, at the hearty and hale old age of seventy-eight. His educa- tion was commenced at home, and conducted from his fourth to his ninth year under the care of a pi'ivate tutor, who taught him the elements of Latin, and his two mother-tongues, French and Italian. He after- wards spent six years in the College of Belley (Ain), and stood high {pjptime) in all his classes. The French Revolution of '48 found him in Rhetoric. Eighteen months later, at the age of hardly seventeen, he accej^ted NOTRE DA^rE. 173 the professorship of Physics (Xatnral Philosophy) in a small college uear Geneva, at Ferney, a village well known in history as the residence of Yoltaire. During the Autumn vacations of 1850 he traveled through Italy and Switzerland. In 1855 he crossed the Atlantic, and arrived in America in company with Right Rev. Dr. Cretin, the founder of Ferney College, and late Bishop of St. Paul, Minnesota. His vocation to the sacred min- istry was now looked upon as decided, and he devoted himself henceforth to the study of Divinity, and to a fervent preparation for missionary labors. The Bishop at this time entrusted the young ex-professor, while con- tinuing his theological studies, with the direction of the schools of his Episcopal city, and of a few young semi- narians whom he (the Bishop) destined for his diocese. The Bishop also prevailed on him to found, with a few teaching brothers he had lately summoned from France, a new religious community in this country. The work was commenced, but soon failed, mainly for the want of pecuniary means and ecclesiastical patronage, the Bishop having died in the mean time. It was then that, feeling himself called to the religious life, he came to Xotre Dame in the early part of 1860, and in the following year made his profession in the Order of Holy Cross, and was ordained priest. Since then he has filled several functions, viz. : Prefect of Religion, Professor of Latin and Greek, Pastor of South Bend, Chaplain of the 6th Missouri Regiment of 1Y4: UNIVERSITY OF Yolunteers, Master of Josephite ITovices, and finally, Professor of I^atural Sciences, still continuing in the office of Librarian and Curator of the Museum, which he has been often heard to call his most delightful office, as it is acknowledged to be his most effective. Rev. Father Carrier's constant kindness to the young men of the Scientific Department, and his zeal in pro- moting their interests, and affording them the means of prosecuting their studies to the best advantage by the use of the literary and scientific treasures in his keep- ing, have won him the affection and devoted attachment of all with whom he has to deal. The orator and his alternate elected at the last meeting of the Alumni having both been unable to meet their engagement, and there being no time left to select another orator, Professor T. E. Howard, of the University, has furnished the following Oration. THE TRUE EDUCATIOK Gentlemen of the Alumni : Owing to tlie unavoid- able absence of the orators chosen by you, I have been requested to address you on this auspicious occasion. I do this, with a double regret — that you are deprived of the pleasure of listening once more to their well-remem- bered eloquence, and that my hasty and feeble produc- tion must be altogether unworthy of this your first reunion and of the beautiful Silver Jubilee of our Alma Mater. Deeply interested as we all are in the past history and future prospects of this young Western University, I 176 UNIVERSITY OF know of no subject that can better occupy our attention for this brief hour than that which has occupied the attention of ISTotre Dame for the past twenty-five years, and which, we hope, will continue to occupy her atten- tion many, many years to come — the great subject of properly guiding the ever-rising generation along the dangerous road that leads from childhood to manhood. I would then speak to you of the True Education — that education which ]^otre Dame aims to give to each one of her pupils. Education, in its broadest and best sense, signifies the harmonious development of all the powers of man. Man, by his nature, consists of body, soul and mind, (the physical, the moral and the intellectual,) strength, love and wisdom. The mind forms, as it were, the link between the body and the soul, giving expression to the feelings, thoughts and aspirations of each, but partaking chiefly of the character of the soul, of which it is the intellectual manifestation — a triune nature, whose true culture forms the crown of the visible creation — a com- plete man. How important, therefore, that we should consider well by what means we may best promote the development of this wonderful organism given us by the all-wise Creator. Nor is it strange that good men in all ages have thought it their first duty and highest pleasure to provide for the education of their people. As man is composed of body, mind and soul, so his education should be physical, mental and moral. He NOTEE DAME. 177 who is trained in one of these respects to the exclusion of the others is, properly speaking, not educated. The extraordinary development of the physical powers with little attention to mind or soul gives us the mere bully and prize-lighter. The extraordinary development of the mind with little regard to body or soul gives us the lean, lank infidel or the dreaming philosopher, turning the world upside down with their wickedness or nonsense, and leaving to sounder and better men the weary task of building it all over again. While the extraordinary development of the soul with little care for mind or body gives us the simple enthusiast, whose mind and body are too weak to hold the spirit, which becomes an angel because he disdained to remain a man. Educating our lower nature only, makes us lower than men — brutes ; educating our intellectual nature only, makes us worse than men — demons ; educating our moral nature only, makes us better than men — angels. But if we wish to remain simply men, we must educate the whole nature of man. This education must be harmonious, moving together, all the powers receiving due attention in their turn. As the body acquires vigor, agility and grace, the mind must acquire strength, wisdom and knowledge, and the soul purity, truth and charity. Men thus educated are models of beauty, lords of wisdom and friends of God. Such were Adam and Eve before the fall — perfect without education from the hand of their maker — Adam 12 178 UNIYEKSITY OF type of manly strength and proportion, Eve fairest of women — whose minds were bright with intelligence and whose souls were pure as the morning dews of Paradise. " Adam the goodliest man of men since born His sons ; the fairest of her daughters, Eve." They walked the groves and valleys, mountains and flowery fields of Eden, vigorous as the noon-day, lovely as the morning. Looking out on all nature, they read as in a book ; the green earth and the starry heavens were the bright open pages on which the words formed into histories and poems more grand and beautiful than sage ever penned or poet dreamed. Day and night their hearts, not thinking evil, rose to God an endless hymn of praise. But they fell, and ever since their fall the world has been educating in the sublime endeavor to return to those model types fashioned by the hand of Divinity. Now we may see what is the real problem of educa- tion, at what end we should aim, what it is that we should desire to do. This is the question which the people should try to answer correctly: How shall our children become like those first children of the world, strong, wise and good ? How many of our good fellow-citizens are at a loss to know why Catholics are so averse to sending their children to the State institutions of learning ! If they would but thus consider our common human nature, they NOTRE DAME. 179 would discover at once a solution to the mystery. Tlie Christian Cluircli never forgets her mission — to teach all nations, to instruct man in all that is necessary for his welfare. And well she knows that it would be of little use to instruct the mind if the soul were forgotten. Whv cherish the lower nature and neglect the hio-her ? We know that the best education is that which trains the body, the mind and the soul ; but if one of these is to be neglected, who will hesitate in the choice ? Who will forget that which distinguishes man over all the visible world, makes him king of the universe — the immortal spirit dwelling within him ? The good Christian is therefore unwilling to send his child to a school or a college where the soul can receive no culture but that which is evil. Educate that boy's mind and forget his soul, and who will answer for it that he will not become a swindler, a rebel — traitor alike to the laws of God and man ? All great rogues have been well trained in the schools, but the influence of religion has not impressed them. What is the state of education in our country ? What means do we provide for the development of the youth of the land ? Thank God, our beloved America, with little help from public or private charity, is rich enough to provide for the food and clothing of her children ! Our lands are deep and broad, and the body is always sure of enough. There is plenty of toil besides to develop all our bodily 1 180 UNIVEESITT OF powers ; plenty to eat, plenty to wear and plenty to do — • the body is well provided for. The mind, too, has here ail it can desire — complete liberty of action, a bound- less field for the exercise of its powers — while in all that concerns the yonng, America has provided magnificently for the mental wants of her people. Each State has her famous schools, colleges and universities where all the lore of ancient and modern times feeds the eager youth- ful intellect of the land. The press groans in the pro- duction of every celebrated work in literature, art and politics which the world has ever known; newspapers and periodicals fall in showers over the whole nation ; steamboats and railway cars rush hither and thither from city to city, bringing profit and information to all the inhabitants. And, as though all these were insufiicient, the sacred fire of Jehovah leaps from heaven and, quick as thought, darts along the continent, springing from wire to wire, charged with intelligence from every people under the sun. As the result of so much that is great, joined with the blessed boon of freedom, the American people are the most intelligent of the human race. In other countries you may find wise men, great statesmen, renowned warriors, but you must come to America to find a culti- vated people. For our physical and intellectual culture, then, our country supplies all that we can desire ; and for this we can never be too grateful to the bountiful Providence NOTRE DAME. 181 which has appointed our dwelling-place in this garden of the world, this happy land of freedom and abundance. But what of our moral nature ; what of the soul ? Ah, my friends, here is our defect ! Everything is pro- vided for the sharp intellect, everything for the perishable body, but nothing for the immortal soul ! Let us, however, be just. States can provide nothing for the soul, except, indeed, to give a general encourage- ment to virtue and to frame just laws for the punishment of the guilty and the protection of the good. What, then, is to become of the nobler part of man ? Is it alone to receive no assistance ? God forbid ! Every right sentiment of our nature forbids that the body which dies to-morrow, the mind which is so strong to guard itself, should fare better than the tender, easily- wounded soul, which is yet to live forever, giving life and grace to the body and lending holiness to the mind, over which it shall hold gentle sway, even as the sera- phim are above the cherubim. We have nothing to do with those muscular Christians who teach that man's highest duty is to develop bone and sinew; still less with those others who teach that man's mind is his god and man's body but a higher dem-ee of the worm. There is a God in heaven who has given us a soul like unto himself, and the aini of the true teacher will be to prepare this soul to return to the bosom of its Maker. This is the better education that teaches men to be better, to aspire after the good and 182 TJNIVEKSITY OF spurn the evil ; and, my friends, what can give a great and good heart more pleasure than this — ^to take the pure child by the hand and write upon the w^hite tablet of its innocent soul the undying lessons of the true, the beautiful and the good ? Once I saw aw^andering child in the street; it was yet too young to learn the language or the deeds of crime, but was fast traveling on the road to ruin. Two good men stood watching the poor little one ; both felt that it was growing up to be a child of misery, and both in their hearts proposed a remedy. One hurried off to the State capital to secure the j^assage of severe laws deterring men from crime. 'New prisons w^ere to be built, and all serious offences punished with death ; the unfortunate offenders against the law w^ere to fill the jails and lockups and the State prisons to clank with the chains of life-long wretched convicts, while the scaffold would reek with the vile blood of blacker villains. In fine, the whole land should groan beneath the iron weight of force — all that the little street child might be deterred from crime. The good legislator then hastened home to await the results of his benevolent labors. But, alas for the uncertainty of human expectations, the best laid plans often come to nought through unfore- seen causes ! Our legislator's more practical friend had long since taken the little one by the hand and led it on the road to virtue through the school-house and the church. Our little child had learned to love the right KOTRE DAME. 183 and despise the wrong. The prison and the scaffold liad no terrors for it, and all the laws of the well-meaning legislator were become quite vain and useless. But he learned this lesson — that it is easier to teach uprightness bj love than to prevent crime by force. A little reflection will show us that this good result cannot be brought about by intellectual education alone. The chief propagators of infidelity and immorality in both ancient and modern times have been, in this sense, well educated men. Your Mahomets, Yoltaires and Brigham Youngs have been men of bright, keen minds, but the culture of their hearts was quite forgotten, or, worse still, their moral nature was contaminated with all the evils of a false education. The most noted traitors and other criminals who have cursed the world have been men of fine natural intellects. All the philosophers, poets, historians and romancers who have corrupted youth and age with their foul lies or fouler truths have been men whose own souls were first corrupted by the evil trainings of their youth. Byron, the glorious bard, whose verse in his better moments flows pure as crystal, but whose lines, alas ! more often wind along in the mire of impurity, whose sad life was a losing struggle between his own better nature and the bias of a misspent youth ; Tom. Paine, whose heart beat high for liberty and good to all men, but whose poor soul had never been touched with the sweet influence of a higher love; Gibbon, whose luminous page lights up the darkness of departed 184: UNIVEKSITY OF Borne, but with a glare too often luridly revealing him as a mocking fiend ; all these, not to speak of the legion whose foul frothings float along the sea of literature — the scum of a corrupt civilization — all were men whose minds were ripe with the best culture of the intellect. But what could intellect avail, what did it avail, while their souls were tossed in the mazes of uncertainty? From irreligion, from human pleasures and passions, and from their human intellects, they endeavored to draw their happiness. Such is the result of mere intellectual education, with a neglected or a false moral culture. How refreshing to turn from these deplorable results of poor human nature to the same human nature made holy in the persons of those better and greater men who have adorned the history of the race ! The annals of Christianity for the last eighteen hun- dred years is a history of the True Education struggling with human nature, training the hearts of men to virtue and bidding them look up humbly but firmly to the God who made them, " Th it they may hope to rise, yet fear to fall," Through those long ages, which persons knowing too little about them call dark, the zealous teachers of Chris- tianity were preserving the lamps of learning in their silent cells. There they learned the lessons of truth, there the heavenly doctrines of Christ ; and thence the}'" went forth to teach all nations what they had received KOTRE DAME. 185 from the Fathers, and the Fathers had received from the great Teacher liimself. And well was the worth of their labors proved when the fierce men of the north poured down from their hills of frost and snow, smiting with the strong hand of savage power the beautiful valleys, cities and towns of southern Europe, together with the fairest products of ancient civilization. All fell at a blow, and the world seemed returning to the dreary barbarism of early times. The elegant buildings, statues, paintings and books, the liter- ature, art and science of lovely Greece and Kome, seemed then no more. All that the human race had done for four thousand years appeared lost forever. Here was an outrage against humanity, the most mon- strous hitherto known, and yet the power of intellectual and civilized Rome was unable to make a successful effort in her own defense. But even then, in that dark hour, were seen in all their grandeur the resources of Christianity. Her sim- ple teachers went out from their cells to educate the wild men of the north ; and what all the energies of Pagan Rome had failed to do that did the patient heroism of Christian Rome accomplish. The day of death and destruction was at an end. The Huns and Yandals, the terror of men and scourge of God, became Christians, children of Heaven and heirs of Christ ; and, in their turn, converted their brethren yet farther north, until all 186 UNIYERSITY OF Europe became Cliristiaii and civilized. Those were teachers whom God had appointed to teach. Since then, holy men have learned in the schools and gone forth to all the world, teaching the people to love Grod, do good and avoid evil ; and to ns, their descend- ants, they have left the same task. *' Culture's hand Hath scattered verdure o'er the land ; And smiles and fragrance rule serene, Where barren wild usurped the scene. And such is man — a soil which breeds Or sweetest flowers, or vilest weeds ; Flowers lovely as the morning's light, Weeds deadly as an aconite ; Just as his heart is trained to bear The poisonous weed, or floweret fair." BOWRING. Are there some still who, granting all this, yet ques- tion the reasonableness of our dislike of State schools ? The perfect education, as we have seen, develops har- moniously the body, the mind and the spirit. But if we cannot have education in its perfection, if our children may not become, as Adam and Eve in their primal state, strong and beautiful, wise and childlike, pure and heavenly, let us at least educate them as well as we can. Above all, let us not give them the worse education without the better. "Were we required to neglect the soul, then would it be better to neglect all education and trust the child to God. Who would train the body only, NOTEE DAME. 187 and thus rear up a mere brute ? "Who would train the mind only, and thus train an imp for satan ? The soul of his child is more precious in the eyes of the good Christian than the body and the mind together. If he should glut the flesh and the brain and starve the poor spirit, well might he fear that after death the tortured soul of his poor offspring would welcome the wicked parents with glaring eyes and ghastly arms to the abyss of woe. " My father, you prepared these fires for me," and he tears the gray hair of the old man. " My mother, you neglected my soul," and he strikes the too indulgent breast of his mother. Such, alas ! must often be the heart-rending meeting of the careless parent and the neglected child when both come together again beyond the grave. Father, father, where is thy wisdom ; and thou, fond mother, where is thy love ? Shall our children learn mathematics to cheat their neighbor of his goods ; and shall they not learn the science that will cheat satan of his prey ? Shall they learn grammar and rhetoric, to speak more elegantly of their wickedness ; and shall they not learn the science that will teach them to speak of the abode of their im- mortal spirits ? Shall they learn geography and history to know the famous places of earth where petty man has planted his puny foot ; and shall they not learn of those places in Heaven and on earth where God, his saints and angels have trodden the mighty steps of eternity ? Or, rather, is it not better that the science of this world 188 TJNIVEKSITY OF sliould be tempered with the science of that better world w^here we all hope to spend the chief part of our exist- ence ? Who shall blame the Christian that thinks serionslj of these things? Should we not rather commend him for holding most precious the soul of his brave son or his gentle daughter? He would but snatch his darlings from the whirlpool where so many youths and maidens are drawn down forever. Should w^e not even assist him that it may be better for us on that day when we must answer for the deeds of this life ? Should not the State itself assist this parent who wishes to train up a good citizen ? Is it not better to build a school house or a college than a jail or a prison ? to rest the foundations of the republic in the hearts than on the necks of its citizens? And yet the State, so far from assisting the Catholic who wishes to give his child a moral and religious education, compels him to support the common school, where he does not send, as well as the Catholic school, where he does send his children. Is this just ? From our hearts we feel that it is not ; and we believe the time is coming when our country will do us justice in this particular. The scruples of con- science are regarded in cases more serious to the State than this. Even when the nation is struggling for life she will not compel numerous bodies of her citizens to bear arms, because they have conscientious scruples against doing so. Our good day will also come ; and KOTRE DAME. 189 Catholics will not be compelled to support scliools wliich tlieir conscience cannot approve. Catholics have shown themselves among the best citi- zens of the Rej)ublic. They have never, as a body, helped to divide their country. AYith them there is no church-north and church-south, dragging the people asunder. A good Catholic cannot be a. bad citizen ; for he knows his duty and is not afraid to do it. But there is no man who can be worse than a bad Catholic; for he sins against the light, knowing his duty he does not do it. If you would have good citizens, then, train up Catholic youth as Catholics ; if you would have bad ones, teach young Catholics to despise the religion of their fathers. For he who has broken the one true law, can have but little respect for any other. The precepts of nature will have little influence on his actions, and the examj)le of good men will but serve him for a sneer. Better for such a one had he never known the truth. How important then that those who have the true interest of their children at heart should think and act well in this matter. If the State will not assist you in the good work, then you must do it yourselves ; and though the State unjustly compels you to support the conimon schools, you must support your own besides. You are able with God's blessing to do both ; and we know that He always helps those that help themselves. Let us not be deterred by any labor or expense we may have to undergo in securing this True Education 190 UNIVERSITY OF for our cliildren. We are profuse in providing for all the J shall need in youth or manhood, for the affairs of business and for success in life. Let us also think of their old age, and of the longer life beyond. Let us invest a portion of our wealth and toil for that, remem- bering *' There comes a time when joyous hearts, "Which leaped as leaps the laughing main, Are dead to all save memory, As prisoner in his dungeon chain ; And dawn of day Hath passed away, The moon hath into darkness rolled And by the embers wan and gray, I hear a voice in whisper say, — * There comes a time when we grown old.' When laughing Spring And golden Summer cease to be, And we put on the Autumn robe, To tread the last declivity, The slope. With rosy hope. Beyond the sunset we behold, Another dawn with fairer light." Anon. Shall we not labor and spend of our wealth profusely, that we and our children may enter that " fairer light " ? We know that had we all the wealth and glory we could desire in this life, it would be as nothing compared with NOTRE DAME. 191 that of the life to come. Then, when we labor and spend our gold that our children may be happy and honored, let us think of both worlds, both lives. The parent or the teacher who thinks only of this earth and of success in this life is not tit for his high position. How abhorrent the idea of an education where God is forgotten or rejected ; how good where he is remem- bered and loved ! Little by little the mind which He made, is brought to know Him and the works of His hand. Little by little the soul which His is own image and likeness, is brought to love Him. How unnatural to separate the thought of God from the daily teaching of the child, to give him a knowledge of dollars and cents but no knowledge of the world where he must dwell hereafter ! A 2:reat Eno^lishman has told us that the schoolmaster is abroad, thinking no doubt that he had thus pointed out the stamp of greatness on the age. The age is great intellectually, and it owes much of its greatness to the schoolmaster ; but it is not great when we consider the end of man. We have great men of science, great inventors, great merchants and money makers ; but we have not a moral and religious people. And were the accounts of the world closed up to-morrow, but too few would be ready to appear before the Judge with clean books and clean hearts. The schoolmaster would have done much more for the nineteenth century and much less against it, had he not 192 UNIYEESITT OF forgotten the great Teacher; had he opened some schools, at least, as sanctuaries of religion as well as of science ; had he suffered the light of Heaven to be at least as grateful to his eyes as is the light of nature ; had he indeed been what Heaven and nature both intended, a trainer of the heart as well as the mind. Ah ! delightful task is yours, O schoolmaster, did you but know it. To take the boy who might become a thief, a swindler, a breaker of the laws of God and man and nature, aterror to his fellows and an enemy to himself ; and make of him a good citizen, a blessing to his family and a favorite of Heaven. To take the little girl, pure and good as Eve in Paradise, and keep her as she is, lest perhaps she fall lower than Eve, yea, become viler than the filth of the street ; to teach her the true, the beautiful and the good, that she may grow up the joy of her parents, the ornament of society, loving and beloved of every one, — in a word, woman, charming, beautiful and good, consoling the weary, praying for the unfor- tunate, helping every one ; woman, the fairest and best creature of God, when fair and good. Well may we say to teachers, as " To mothers, what a holy charge Is theirs — with what a kingly power their love Might rule the fountains of the new-born mind ; Warn them to wake at early dawn, and sow Good seed before the world has sown its tares." SlGOTTRNEY. NOTRE DAME. 193 Let US then, my friends, wlio know onr duty, not be satisfied to train the body and the mind only ; let us re- member also the heart. Let us remember what man is, that he possesses a soul as well as a body and a mind, that he is a moral and responsible as well as an intellec- tual and physical being ; that these three must be trained if we would educate the whole man ; in a word, that the True Education is moral as well as intellectual and physical, and that there is no education so false, high sounding though it be, as that which neglects the soul, the noblest part of man. 13 i\ Btiih THE SILYER WEDDUS^G. BY T. E. HOWARD. What is it, Notre Dame, that thou wouldst celebrate ? Why is it all the people gather at thy gate? The Jubilee, the Silver Jubilee, they cry. And lift their voices high, high o'er thee, to the sky. The old are here, they who did know thee in thy youth ; They who, long years ago, sipped from thy fount of truth ; They who have seen thy growth, beheld tliy powers expand. Thy beauty bloom, thy fragrance fill the happy land. The young are here, the children, who but know thee now, As here thou sitt'st, mature in grace, with matron brow, Winning, with thy mother love, thy wisdom meet, The generous, gifted spirits gathered at thy feet. KOTEE DAME. 195 But. why have they come, O Notre Dame, why lovingly stay ? Why gather these fathers and mothers and children around thee to-day ? Why shinest, O brilliant sun, from on high, in thy yearly noon. Flooding glad earth with the beauty and promise of gorgeous June ? And why, o'er all, through all, do these harmonies surge and roll ? Why on thy brow, O Founder, beams thy tranquil soul ? Ah ! why do we feel, enrapt, the sweet, the holy power, Of this Jubilee of Joy, this Silver Wedding hour ? Ah ! Notre Dame, thou wouldst rejoice, thou wouldst be glad, Remember all thy happy years, forget the sad ; Thy spirit moves and breathes in all this bright array ; Thou wouldst give vent to bursting thankfulness to-day. So did the chosen children, in the days of old. When, seven times seven, the Father's years had o'er them rolled : So doth the Mother Spouse, all fair the spotless Dove, When the silver years o'erflow with the gifts of her heavenly Love. Thine is, O Alma Mater, thine this holy joy, This Jubilee of Love, this blessed Saints' employ ; For gladness dwells within thee, for the bounty given, While swells thy soul with gratitude to gracious Heaven. Lo ! too, the Jubilee sits on thy reverend brow, Thou favored toiler, gathering in thy harvest now : Dark days were thine ; but now the silvery beam for thee ; Ah ! long may they beam, till glows thy Golden Jubilee I 196 UNIYERSITT OF But while we celebrate this double Jubilee, Our Father's and our Alma Mater's, joyously ; No less these surging crowds, this great display, Proclaim, we celebrate a Silver Wedding day. Here, in the wilderness, one-fourth a century gone. Were Faith and Science wed, and made forever one. Here have they dwelt, and reared their goodly sons, Children of mind and soul, whose nature even runs ; Not superstitious, taking aught on human trust. Not plunging mad, but pausing where frail creatures must ; By science unto wisdom led, where science can, While Faith discloses realms beyond the realms of man : So Dante, led by Virgil, paused beneath the stars ; Saint Beatrice 'twas led beyond the golden bars. Thus, taught of earth and heaven, men reach their proper stature, Filling the plan marked out by God and perfect nature ; Not monsters, not o'ergrown, or dwarfed, in whole or part ; But each in just proportion, body, mind and heart. This is Creation's voice, would we but rightly take her, Ever in her works suggesting her great Maker ; This, too, the voice of calmer reason, when the mind By no poor prejudice or passion is confined. The culture of the heart must be no more neglected, If we desire our better nature be perfected. If we would not have all our buclding greatness blighted. The living spirit in us must no more be slighted ; No more the good within us from the great divorced — Unnatural, the soul and mind asunder forced ! NOTEE DAME. 197 Behold the Sabbath throngs that crowd these halls and grounds ; List to the humming joy that from their presence sounds ; With faces wreathed in sunshine, brows unknit from care ; Their souls, tumultuous, uttering accents rich and rare : These come to protest against that infamous divorce, Parting heaven from earth, religion from learning, fountain from source ; These come to rejoice and be glad at this bridal of spirit and mind. To rejoice and be glad at this wedding which heaven herself has designed : No more, they cry, that modern sacrilege and blunder, What God hath joined in wisdom, none shall put asunder ; This Silver Wedding hath confirmed the holy union, Religion, Education, joined in sweet communion. Ah ! dear America, one blot is on thy banner, Dark as the stain when men were sold on Freedom's manor : Slavery is dead, but anarchy is in the school ; And thence shall tyranny come, and despots rise to rule. Thy youthful intellect is sharpened, day by day ; Thy youthful heart there's none to guide the better way. What we would have men practice in maturer age, That, says the maxim, should their early thoughts engage. And time confirms this teaching : — while the Grecian state Preserved the morals of her youth, she still was great ; But Greece, her morals gone, with mind yet bright and keen, No orator could save from fall most base and mean : 198 UNIVEESITT OF So Rome, while stoic virtue ruled her youthful mind, Stood, in her strength, the mighty mistress of mankind ; But Rome, corrupt of heart, and reveling round her boards, Fell, in her shame, the prey of rude barbarian hordes : England, the Catholic, wrung charters from her kings, Charters to which, e'en still, our blessed freedom clings, — Wrung victory from those would make her children slaves, — Then sought the main, to shout, Britannia rules the waves ; But England, rotten to the core, trembles with fear ; Her sceptre is gone, and the boding future draws near and more near. Wouldst thou, America, be safe where all have lost. Look to the soul, look to the heart, of thy youthful host. Only through her children, a great and good man saith, Can a land endangered be preserved from moral death. That danger is thine, my country, and thy schools teach naught May save the costly liberty thy blood hath bought ; For knowledge, of itself, can never make men good. As Adam dearly learned from that forbidden food ; And as we, poor Adam's sons, might know, if wise ; For knowledge here abounds, if knowledge could suffice. But, as we turn to gaze, what spectres rise on every hand ? Loose Morals, Bribery, Flattery, gloating o'er the land ; The great Republic tottering at their gross attack. While place-men praise, and none will drive the danger back : Bad men plunge headlong into debt, do deeds of shame. Sell honor, self-respect,— and all for a sounding name ; And then, a crime that should the meanest soul abash. To pay their debts, trade votes, trade sacred trust, for cash. KOTEE DAME. 199 And these crowd off the modest and deserving few, Who might, perchance, lend grace to the oflSce-seeking crew. "What can we hope when such men sit in legal halls ? — Good laws still broken, bad ones made, as passion calls. Rich murderers and thieves are rife in every city, Scot-free they go, in spite of justice or of pity. The gospel's self is spurned, as legal licence thrives : From wives, husbands by law divorced ; from husbands, wives. Thus marriage made a mockery, a civil bargain. Bound or broken by the law's unchristian jargon, Soon child and parent heedless grow, the family's gone ; And social ruin, fierce and gaunt, comes stalking on. Should we not act to save our children, save our nation, From this utter shame, this abject degradation ? Less of boasting would befit us, without measure Highly favored, while we trifle with our treasure : Much is given us, much again will be expected — Woe, woe, dear land, if thy rich talents are neglected ! A duty links with every privilege ; and our youth. While taught all science, should be taught all moral truth, 'Tis good to seek for tvealth, lead roads from sea to sea, Found cities and commonwealths for a people great and free, All this is noble ; but far nobler-'s yet to do : To rear a virtuous youth, a manly and a true. Our hobby and our pet, our lauded common school, Must train up men, fit to be free, and fit to rule : Religion must with science there again unite. If we would have our great, free people live aright. 200 TJNIVEESITT OP All ! then the silver age, and soon will come the golden ; When laws are good, and power by good men will be holden. No offices will then be bought for treacherous gold. Nor debts be paid by votes and trust and honor sold ; No thieves escape their just deserts, no murderers rife ; No good men wronged, no modest men kept down by strife ; No hasty marriage, quickly made and broke for sport, — Made by a justice, and unmade by act of court : But moral law, the higher law, will rule the free, — Good faith and honor guarding our proud liberty. Then shalt thou celebrate thy Jubilee, dear land, From the blue Atlantic to Pacific's purple strand. Then from far Alaska unto sunny Mexico, From Rio Grande to Maine, shall milk and honey flow. From Alleghanies to the Parks of Colorado, All the vallies shall be decked in fine bravado ; And Peace, strong Peace, shall wave her blessed banners o'er us, While the Gulf shall laugh and the Lakes respond in mighty chorus. O that will be the wedding of the great and good. The Jubilee of universal brotherhood ; When the troubled waters shall heed the whisper. Peace, be still I O day for which we hope and strive with all our will, When thy blooming morn shall dawn, from the pine land to the palm. May they not forget, in their joy and their grand triumphal psalm, This Silver Wedding day, this Jubilee of Notro Dame. Il|^ 4^Ii|lrrati0it. PKELIMI^AKY. There were three preliminary celebrations of the Jubilee. The first was the Patronal Festival of Yery Eev. Father General, celebrated October 13, 1868, under the auspices of the Thespian and Philharmonic Societies of E'otre Dame. The second was conducted by the members of the Silver Jubilee Club, a Dramatic Society, organized by a company of eager youths who were impatient of the slow movements of the months, and desired to begin in April the series of festivals which should inaugurate the great festival of June. The third was rather a welcome than a celebration. It was under the auspices of the St. Cecilia Philomathean Society, and given in honor of the return from France of the Founder of J^otre Dame, Yery Kev. Edward Sorin, Superior General of the Order of Holy Cross. From the columns of the Chicago daily papers, and of the Scholastic Year, the Students' paper of i^otre Dame, we take the chief part ot our notice of these pleasant entertainments. 202 UNIVEESITY OF ST. EDWAED'S DAY. The Patronal Feast of the Yery Kev. E. Sorin, always a great day at the University of which he is the founder, was this year celebrated with more than nsual splendor, owing to the fact of the venerable gentleman's having, during the past summer, become the recipient of the highest honor and position that the religious order to which he belongs can bestow, namely : the Generalship. The exercises commenced by the ringing of beUs, on the evening of the 12th inst., the vigil of the FestivaL The sweet chimes of Notre Dame, mingling their merry notes with the deep bass of the largest bell in the United States, saluted the ears of the Yery Reverend Grentleman in the most gladdening strains of joy at the return of the Anni- versary. A guard of honor, headed by the I^otre Dame University Cornet Band, then escorted him to Washington Hall, where the greater portion of the students were assembled. The following programme was then pre- sented to the audience : PART FIRST. Grand Opening Marcli N. D. U. Cornet Band Allegro, Haydn's 4tli Symphony Orchestra March — chorus, (V. E. Beeker,) Philharmonics Latin Address Tames Cunnea Greek Address James O'Reilly " Land of Light " — chorus, by Philharmonics English Address — Senior Department H. B. Keeler French Address D. J. Wile German Address M. Foote Doretten Polka N. D. Orchestra Music N. D. U. Cornet Band English Address — Junior Department J. Ryan Minims' Address E. Lyons, G. Gross, J. Wilson Music N. D. U. Cornet Band Song — (The Founder of Notre Dame) Choral Union Kalif de Bagdad ..Orchestra NOTRE da:me. 203 PART SECOND. The GiiosT — A Comedy in Three Acts — By the Thespian Society. Dramatis Personce. Garrick (the actor) as Capt. Storm and Mr Wilde, Sr M. S. Ryan Pkimp, (an honest landlord) A. B. White Bliiide, a (conscientious magistrate) H. B. Keeler Wilde, Jr James O'Reilly Gouvernet, (a scene painter) J. M. Moriarty Tom, (a servant boy) Wm. Rhodes George (not afraid of ghosts) Wm. R3^an Newsboy, (crier of Tlie Star) Jas. Page After Act I— Orchestra. After Act II— Band. After Act HI— Orchestra. March for retiring. Closing Remarks. The performance was such as to elicit continual applause from the audience, and a handsome compliment from \^ery Rev. Father Sorin, at its close. If it were not invidious to particularize, I should select as especially worthy of mention the '' Doretten Polka," and the immortal " Kalif de Bagdad," by the Orchestra, under the leadership of Prof. Max Girac, a gentleman so well known to the musical world of Chicago. The Cornet Band also furnished its quota of music in very line style, considering the short time since the beginning of the scholastic year which they had for preparation. Among the addresses, that by the Minims probably carried the loudest applause, as it generally does — the little fellows usually taking advantage of these opportunities to assert their dignity in a strain rather comic. But from a serious point of view, the address from the Senior Depart- ment, read by Mr. II. B. Keeler, seemed to be the best received. 204 UNIVERSITY OF J SEJSriORS' ADDRESS. Vert Rev Father: — When first your attention was called to the West, And you left far behind you the home you loved best — Fair France left behind you, — and crossed the broad main, Your sacrifice, certainly, was not in vain. But when this locality first met your eyes, With nothing around but the woods and the skies, And the lake that reflected the heavenly blue, Did you dream of the scene that at present you view ? Did visions of palaces stately and fair, And blest by the mingling of science and prayer — Did these haunt your pillow when sleeping you lay In the wanderer's hut built of logs and of clay ? When the Indians around you astonished would stare At the great undertaking they saw you prepare. Did you dream such a concourse of Japhet's white race Would hail you their Father and throng to this place ? Did the statue of One rising up over all, Whom all generations most blessed shall call. Did this pass before you as musing you stood, And made your orisons beneath the dark wood ? Did the carols of birds in the wilderness drear Foretell of the chimes to your listening ear, Or the voices that rang from the shores of the lake. Like the tones of the organ your pulses awake ? Did you think that the landscape around you would swell And resound with the sonorous notes of the bell ? That bell so renowned as the largest, to stand Unmatched through the length and breadth of land. And when meditation your eyelids would fold, Did you see passing by yon in purple and gold, Processions and banners with sacred display. To keep with rejoicing some festival day ? NOTRE DAME. 205 Ah, yes ! some such visions as these must have blest The eyes of your mind when you sought in the West, A spot in which wisdom her dwelling might build And radiate light till the land should be tilled. Some thoughts such as the?e must your heart have consoled When far from j'our friends and in perils untold, You foced and you fought with the world, till at last Glad triumph rewarded the trials that were past. But bright as the visions must doubtless have been, That were sent to support you by Heaven's great Queen, We surely must think when the past we recall, That this present reality passes them all. A century's quarter and more has gone by Since you took your abode 'neath the Westerly sky, And again you return from your own native land. Adorned with new honors and powers to command. You sat in the council with Bishop and Priest, And man)'- had come from the West and the East ; Around you the holy, the wise and the true. The office of General placed upon you. So you, when at present, our Father we call, We claim many brethren in distant Bengal; Your children thus spread witliout national bound, In America, Europe and Asia are found. But we among all have the principal claim To share in your joys and p:irtake of your fame, Since w^ are the sons of the home of your choice. And in your success most sincerely rejoice. Accept then our warm salutation to-day ; And believe for your welfare we ever siiall pray, That your administration may fortunate be. And prosperity constant your order may see. That honors around you may thicken and grow. And each happy day some new blessing may show. May you live to enjoy them for many a year, And ev'ry St. Edward's day pass with us here. Your devoted children of the Senior Department. 206 UNIVERSITY OP ENTERTAINMENT BY THE SILVER JUBILEE CLUB. Tuesday Eyening, April 27. The members of the " Silver Jubilee Club " of I^otre Dame, have, as previously announced, made their first appearance on the stage of Washington Hall — thereby inaugurating the series of entertainments to be given next June in commemoration of the twenty-fifth anni- versary of the foundation of this University. Last night, April 27th, of the year of Jubilee 1869, we had the great pleasure of assisting at the first pre- liminary celebration of the Silver Jubilee of this Insti- tution, given under the auspices of the above-mentioned Club. We are sure of rightly interpreting the senti- ments of all those who were fortunate enough to witness the performance, when we say that the Mdlow-drama. was exceedingly well written, combining refined witti- cism in expression, somewhat eccentric picturesqueness in design, and a slight touch of extravagance tln-ough- out, and that it was rendered by the young actors — all members of the Club — in a manner highly creditable to themselves, and to those who trained them. We understand that the Play is the production (and a very original one it is, in more than one sense) of the talented and highly imaginative director of the Silver Jubilee Club, Professor A. J. Stace. The style is earnest, NOTRE DAME. 207 graceful and very fanciful. As a proof of it, we will take the liberty of transcribing for the benefit of absent friends, the programme for the occasion. PEOGEAMME. Grand Entrance March K D. U. Cornet Band Music Orchestra Preliminary Preface previous to the Prologue. . . .Mr. W. A. Walker PROLOGUE. Palace of the Sun. Cyclorcheosis of the Hours. Song — (The Musquito) Mr. George McAtkinson SUB JOVE MUNDUS ERAT; SUBIIT ABGENTEA PROLES. —Ovid. THE SON OF THE SUN. A Mythological, Classical, and Astronomical Mellow-Drama, in Three Scenes. Scene I.— His Sash Bequest. Scene II.— His Mad Sareer. Scene III.— Bis Untimely End. DRA^IATIS PERSONS. Jupiter Olympius (A notorious old Heathen) Mr. W. A. Walker Phoebus AjDollo (commonly called the Sun). Mr. James A. Dickinson Phaeton {his Son) Mr. W. P. McClain Mars (super musculmn suum) Mr. George Mc. Atkinson Mercury (A Divinity Running Around Loose) Mr. R. L. Akin Bacchus (A Divinity Running Around Tight). . .Mr. J. M. Moriarty Vulcan (A Celestial Blacksmith) Mr. James Cunnea Boreas (A Celestial Bellows) Mr. G. R. Hatchett Neptune (A Marine Monster) Mr. E. D. Riddle The Infant Orpheus (A Smart Boy after a Pig). . . .Mr. Ivo Buddeke Orpheus (when arrived at years of Discretion) Mr. B. Vocke Orion (A Constellation with Good Grit) Mr. M. J. Carney Gemini (The Original Siamese). .Messrs. H. C. Allen & L. G. Dupler Serpentarius ) f Mr. J. Garhartstine Bootes \ (Constellations without much Grit) \ Mr. J. Zahm Aquarius ) (. Mr. J. C. Eisenmau The Dog Star ( Vox et prceterea nihil) Mr. Noisy 208 UNIYEESITY OF The River Styx (Who had better have Stayed Away) . Sig.nor Furioso i: B. Im \ (Two Memorable Years) | ^r. J. Zah^. ^^_^^^ Dr. Pangloss (A Mortal Man) Mr. T. F. Heery TWELVE HOUSS (WHICH OUGHT TO BE BETTER EMPLOYED). ATTENDANTS ON JUPITEE. Scenery, Interludes, &c., &c. Scene L— Below the Horizon, the Sun Taking his Morning Smoke. Solo (in the key of Sol), by the Sun Song (Chorus by the Club),—" Be a Man," Mr. J. M. Moriarty Scene IL— The Starry Heavens. Pas de Deux ; by Dr. Pangloss and the Constellation Orion. Song (the tragical fate of poor Thomas Maltese) . . Mr. J, A. Dickinson Scene IIL— Court of Jupiter Olympius. Vulcan Forging the Armor of Mars. Anvil Chorus Orchestra Entrance March for Jupiter N. D. TJ. Cornet Band Death of Phaeton Grand Tableau Song—" Come Home, Father,"— Chorus by the Club Mr. George Mc. Atkinson Concluding Scene— in the nature of a Climax. Apotheosis of Orpheus.— Celestial Calisthenics. Epilogue, which it takes Two Years to Complete. Music Orchestra Afterpiece-" THE MISTAKE." Mr. Hardcastle —A Country Gentleman of the good Old School Mr. George Mc. Atkinson Tony (his son), a Mischievous Young Rascal. . . .Mr. W. A. Walker Charles Marlow— Betrothed to Hardcastle's daughter. .Mr. R. L. Akin George Hastings — Marlow's friend Mr. Ivo Buddeke Landlord of the Village Inn Mr. T. L. Watson Song and Dance (Between the Scenes) Mr. M. J. Carney CLOSING EEMARKS. March for Retiring N. D. U. Cornet Band Sucli was the peculiar nature of the performance, that it is difficult to express adequately our high appreciation of it and mention its varied excellencies. We will, how- NOTRE DAME. 209 ever, notice the following parts or characters as deserv- ino-, in our opinion, special commendation : Mr. W. A. Walker, as " Jnpiter," behaved with the majesty to be expected from so exalted a personage. He directed the other " gods " with an energy and decis- ion that show^ed he was quite competent to fill his responsible situation. Afterwards, in the part of " Tony," he was so completely transformed that the audience needed to consult their programmes to convince them that it was the same performer. Mr. Dickinson's "Apollo " w^as a breathing Belvidere. His appearance in the prologue, while making his address to the " Hours," was splendid ; his singing, both in the character of the " Sun " and in the interludes, was such as to sustain his w^ell-earned reputation as a singer. Mr. W. p. McClain, as " Phaeton," managed his Hery steed, the velocipede, wdtli a dexterity far excelling that of his prototype — if Ovid's account be true, — and he met his "Untimely End" with the courage of a hero. Many w^ere the fears expressed that he had " hurt himself," but he knows how to do it, and to do it grace- fully and artistically, without danger. Mr. Akin was an elegant " Mercury," and appeared to equal advantage in the afterpiece as "Marlow." Mr. G. Mc. Atkinson, in the afterpiece, also realized to the hfe the ideal of a fine, old-fashioned, hospitable and courteous gentleman. Mr. J. M. Moriarty gave " Bacchus " his due, but it was in the beautiful song of " ^e a Man^''^ chorused by the Club, that his finest point was made during the evening. Mr. James Cunnea showed much skill in forging the armor of " Mars," and in beating the anvil in j)erfect accord with a celestial orphean concert. 14 210 UNIVERSITY OF As for the remainder of the long list of " divinities " and " constellations," not forgetting Doctor Pangloss, the only mortal man in the drama, they all contributed to form a tout ensemble that elicited the approbation of all. The " Dog of Bootes " has the merit of being the first quadruped that ever made his appearance before a Notre Dame audience. We must not forget to mention that the scene where the " Hours " were made to revolve around the " Son of the Sun" was so felicitously and gracefully rendered that it was vociferously applauded by the audience and acceptably encored by the actors. It is but just also to make mention of the excellent music furnished on the occasion by the Notre Dame University Cornet Band and the Orchestra. WELCOME TO YEEY KEY. FATHEK GENEEAL ON HIS EETURN FEOM FEANCE, MAY 22, 1869. The city of South Bend was somewhat startled out of the sober current of its every day life, on Saturday after- noon, the 22d inst., by the appearance of the Notre Dame University Cornet Band, which filled two large band-wagons in a corporeal, and the whole city in a musical point of view. The South Benders had been aware that Yery Eev. Father Sorin was to arrive short- ly, but did not anticipate that it would be so soon. Some time after the band came, the President, Eev. Father Corby, the Yice President, Eev. Father Lem- onnier, and a numerous deputation of the College NOTRE DAME. 211 faculty of Notre Dame, met to welcome the return of the founder of the University. The depot bj this time was thronged, and, when the train came panting in, a moment or two of snspense followed, and several faces began to look blank, believing that their expected guest had not come. Their fears were relieved, however, when Yery Rev. Father Sorin was seen bowing and shaking hands with that dignified urbanity for which he is so distinguished, and surrounded by such a host of greeting friends that it Avas with difficulty he made his way to the carriage in waiting to convey him to Notre Dame. The band, as he emerged from the depot, set up a hearty cheer, with "three times three," and immediately the musical bugle call of their military leader. Prof. J. O'Neill, brought every instrument into communication with the pair of lungs destined to supply its exigencies. The grand march from La Fille du Regiment was per- formed for the cortege during its onward progress. As they turned the corner of the principal street, the enthu- siastic "Hurrah Chorus," with the appropriate vocal "hurrahs," succeeded, and lively music continued as they passed through the city. The streets were thronged. The many good old friends that Fatlier Sorin had earned for himself during his residence in this neighborhood were eager to testify their joy at his safe return. As the procession approached Notre Dame it was met by the students of the University, who turned out in a body to welcome home their founder. Their cheers were echoed by the ringing of bells — the largest bell in the United States, swelling deep below them all — and the firing of cannon. Father Sorin, on arriving at Notre Dame, went directly to the church, a Te Deum being sung by the choir. He then proceeded to the College, where, having partaken of the evening repast, in the dining 212 TJNIYEKSITY OF room of the senior department, he went with his friends to Washington Hall to receive the addresses prepared by the various bodies of the University. The College fac- ulty was represented by Prof. L. G-. Tong, M. Ace, of the commercial department, in a neat and appropriate address, Mr. Tong being supported by Prof. Lyons, A. M., and Prof Ivers, A. M., representing the classical and scientific departments, respectively. Addresses then followed from the seniors, juniors, and minims, with interludes of pleasing vocal music, the latter, as well as the subsequent play of the "Prodigal Law Student," being performed by the St. Cecelia Philomathean society, of the junior collegiate department, under the direction of Prof. J. A. Lyons. The play, though undertaken in somewhat of a hurry, passed off extremely well, partic- ular praise being due to the acting of Masters Charles Burdell as "Tightfist," D. J. Wile as " Old Mr. Martin," and P. J. O'Connell as "Eichards." Masters M. Foote as " Angelo," J. W. Coppinger as the " Professor," and Y. Hackman as " Harry," were commendable also. Master P. Cochrane presented a very warlike appearance as " Gen. Watson ;" and the two newsboys. Masters T. Arrington and M. Mahony, created a great deal of amusement. So did Master James Deehan, in the part of "Mr. O'Flaherty," late of the Emerald Isle, although the dimensions of his role had been considerably reduced. The closing remarks of Father Sorin were very feeling and impressive. He dwelt at some length on the pleasure he felt at the prosperous condition in which he found the University, and kindly acknowledged the attempt made to give him a worthy reception. The orchestra, under the direction of Prof M. E. Girac, LL. D., enlivened the performance by their well-chosen music, NOTRE DAME. 213 and so also did the University Cornet Band, already mentioned. Father Sorin looks extremely well. The ardnons dnties of his office as superior-general did not permit him to remain long at J^otre Dame. He left for ISTew Orleans on Tuesday afternoon, the 25th. He will, how- ever, return in time for the Annual Commencement exercises on June 23, and celebrate with his friends, the 25th anniversary, or Silver Jubilee of the institution he founded and presided over so long and so successfully. JUOTORS' WELCOME TO YEKY KEY. FATHER GENERAL. As sung by Yincent H. Hackmann, of St. Louis, Mo., in the sweet voice now so well known and loved at Notre Dame, May 22d, 1869 : Why are the Juniors glad to-night? Why swells the tide ot joy ? Why blooms each cheek so fresh and bright? Why sparkles every eye ? Dear Father, 'tis thy presence kind, That lights this joj^oiis beam ; That fills each Jnnior's heart and mind, With reverence, love, esteem. When snatched away by duty's call, We raised our hearts on high, And prayed the Father, guide of all. To guard thee, from the sky. When tossed upon the mountain wave, We turned to Ocean's Star, And prayed that she would guide and save Thy bark from every mar. I 214: UNIVERSITY OF | i Now blest be He who rules the storm, \ And blest be Mary's care, i Our Father, free from every harm, Returns our joys to share. i Then welcome Father, welcome home ! Thy children love thee dear ; j 0, never leave us more to roam, 1 But stay our hearts to cheer. j "We'll sing and play and study well, j To cheer our Father's heart ; ! Then welcome home ! O with us dwell, | And never more depart. i ST. CECILIA CELEBEATIOK Every year about the time of St. Cecilia's day, the St. Cecilians give a pleasant entertainment in honor of their Patroness. The entertainment is chiefly musical, as might be expected, but also dramatic and always highly entertaining. According to Hiawatha, this Society was founded " In the dreamy, rich November, In the slumbrous Indian summer. On the day of sweet Cecilia, In the year of eight and fifty. Well the time we all remember, When the art of soft according Drew this goodly troop together, When they chose the blest Musician, Sweetest Patron, gifted, lovely. Queen of Harmony, to guide them Through the maze of heavenly numbers. Saint Cecilia, Philomathean, Field band famous, corps dramatic ; Music sang they, music played they, NOTRE DAME. 215 Hymns recited, read addresses, Plays enacted, plaudits rousing ; On the stage and in the city, "Winning fame and winning honor ; Serenading, in processions. Ever flashed their martial colors. Ever first were borne their banners, Ever welcome w^as their presence, Ever hearty, warm, their greeting ; And their President-Professor, Generous Joseph Aloysius Ever felt his warm beating. While he listened to their praises." This year their entertainment was even more praise- worthy than usual, as may be inferred from the following PKOGEAMME. Part I. Grand Opening March N. D. U. Cornet Band Overture, (La Dame Blanche) Orchestra Address of the Evening John W. Coppinger Song, (Duett) Vincent Hackman and R. Staley Ode on St. Cecilia's Day, (Dryden) Robert Staley Music N. D. U. Cornet Band DECLAMATIONS. Rienzi D. J. Wilde XTsZr "'''"''' \ MarkFoote Putting on Airs V. Hackman Toll for the Brave Clias. Burdell Rights of the Indian Henrv O'Neill Music. N. D. U. Cornet Band Fontenoy Michael Mahoney Seminole's Reply John McHugh Music N. D. U. Cornet Band The Baron's Last Banquet P. J. O'Connell Press On George McCartney The Sword of Washington George Mulhall Humorous Recitation Asa Wetherbee Duett Vincent Hackman and Robert Staley Music (Pot Pourri) Orchestra 216 UNIVERSITY OF Part II.—" IF I WERE A KING." A DRAMA IN FOUR ACTS. Composed by a friend expressly for the St. Cecilia Society. Dramatis Personm, Genaro (shepherd king) Robert Staley Ferdinand (King of Naples) Jas. F. Ryan Orazzio (Duke of Otranto) J. W. Coppinger Valerio (shepherd king's JHtle brother) Mark Foote Alberto (son of King Ferdinand) William Clark Ruisco (cousin of the king and conspirator) D, J. Wile Bozza (major domo of the king's palace) Jas. Willson Giovine (hermit) Aloysius Hemstiger Banquo (overseer of shepherds) P. J. O'Connell Silvio ] f Vincent Hackman Baptisto I Michael Mahoney Philppo V (Shepherds) ■{ Benjamin Heffernan Cecato I Asa Wetherbee Marco J 1^ James Dooley Gonsalvo (Spanish ambassador and conspirator) L. F. Willson Melchiore (courtier) Franklin P. Dwyer Alonzo (general of king's armies) R. H. McCarty Cesare (general and traitor) Zach. Vandeveer Marini ) ( Joseph Mulhall Doria >■ (courtiers and pages) -J Geo. Redfield Lino ) ( Frank Nichols ^^PP° I (-attendants^ -S ^^"^'^ ^'^^^^ Lupo [ ^auenaanis) -^ P. J. McCartney Hugo (1st officer) John Kelly Crescio (2nd officer) Chas, Marentetie Marzo (soldier) F. Spencer Royal Usher James McGuire Stephano (chief of the brigands) .P. Cochrane Pedro "] r Chas. Huchings Lucio [ /i^^:„„„/i„\ J Jas. Deehan Urso K^rigands) j Chas. Burdell SeranoJ [TIios. Arrington Prologue Jas. Willson NOTRE DAME. 217 WASHmGTOJST'S BIETHDAY. The birthday of the Father of his Country is always a holiday at Xotre Dame; and, coming as it does near the beginning of the second term, has always been a signal for the production of some joyous celebration, generally including the drama and always the song and oration. Thus, Notre Dame is doing her share to fix this great day among the few holidays celebrated by the people of this country. The Thespian and Philharmonic societies, under the direction of Prof M. T. Corby, had charge of all the arrangements for this year's celebration, and gave, as might be expected, complete satisfaction to everybody. The following was the PEOGRAMME. Introductory March Band Overture— Tancredi (Rossini) Orchestra Oration Jas. Cunnea Chorus Philharmonics Address D. J. Wile Chorus Philharmonics Recitation Mark Foote Solo and Chorus The Bright Ionian Sea National Air Band Overture— Cenerentola (Rossini) Orchestra COUNT DE MOOR. Dramatis Personw. Chas. De Moor M. S. Ryan Francisco De Moor J. M. Moriarity Count De Moor W. Rhodes Julius Jacob Eisenman Hei man A. B. White Switzer L. B. Losran Roller J. O Rellly Spiegelberg H. B. Keeler 218 UNIVEESITY OF Schufterle S. Corby Kazman J. 8. Gavit \ Grrimm H. P. Morancy '■ Daniel W. Roy Commissary A. W. Arrington j Kozinski J. J. Fleming National Air Band Overture , Orchestra ' A RACE FOR A DINNER. A COMEDY IN ONE ACT. | Dramatis Persons. , ! Sponge H. B. Keeler "' Feedwell Wm. Rhodes Doric A. B. White i Measureaton J. M. Moriarty Dalton A. W. Arrington j Lovell R. L. Aiken | Francis Jas. O'Reilly ";'> Gammon Stephen Corby "r ADDKESS FEOM THE STUDENTS OF THE ^ UISriYERSITY TO YERY KEY. A. GEAJSTGEE, i PEOYIISTCIAL, S.S.C, PEEFECT OF EELIGIOJST IN THE UJSTIYEESITY. [Read by Mr. James Cunnea] Yeky Eeveeend Father : In the celebration of this i glorious festival, when so much is observed and dis- | played of the exterior graudeur of E'otre Dame; when ^ honors are hea]3ed upon the heads of all who have had a i share in the foundation of the outward and visible edifice, ' how can we forget the inward and spiritual structure of ^ which the outward is but a symbol ? How can we forget I the edifying lives of those who have been chiefly instru- j mental in building up that spiritual structure, both by NOTEE DAME. 219 example and precept? If we praise the courage, the patience and the perseverance which contributed to tlie rise, progress and completion of the University, shall we say nothing of the animating breath of religion from which these great virtues receive their life, their efficacy and their eternal reward? And shall we say nothing of him whose very presence carries the atmosphere of reli- gion with it wherever it blesses the earth? Shall we offer no congratulations to the man who has known more of the true life of Notre Dame for the greater part of the period whose conclusion we now celebrate than any other within the walls of the University? Father, when you left the quiet seclusion of St. Aloy- sius' Novitiate, with which your name w^as so long id en- titled, and came to be our Prefect of Keligion in the noisy college, we must acknowledge that you made a sacrifice, but a sacrifice for which our hearts are not ungrateful, even though earthly gratitude was not the reward you sought. Your devoted labors for our spirit- ual welfare, the many hours you have sat for our sakes imprisoned in the narrowest of cells, these, begun even in your former seclusion, w^ere redoubled when you came amongst us. Your kindness in offering instruction to all who would receive it, bringing many to the True Fold of the One Shepherd; your attention to those who though believing in and professing the Ancient Faith w^ere yet, through early neglect, unable to give a satisfactory account of the belief that was in them — the fruits of these good works will meet you on your triumphant entry into the eternal mansions prepared for you. How many souls (some already gone before you into a better world,) will then hail you as the chief instrument, under Provi- dence, of the accomAplishment of their beatitude ! And the little band who have attended your 220 UNIVERSITY OF mass in the college chapel, though the time has come for them now to separate, though their places next year may be filled by others, yet, wherever they may be, on what- ever distant shore their lot may be cast, united still in one desire they will breathe a common aspiration to heaven invoking a blessing on him who has been so trnly a father to ns all. May you, very reverend sir, long live and see the triumph of true religion over all hearts, and, more especially, over the hearts of Your devoted spiritual children, The Students of Notre Dame. ADDRESS TO EEY. FATHER CORBY, SUPE- RIOR AND PRESIDENT OF NOTRE DAME, DELIYERED AT THE CLOSE OF THE JUNE EXAMINATIONS, 1869. [Read by Mr. D. A. Clarke.] Reverend and Dear Father: About to part from you, some for a few weeks and some, perhaps, forever, we desire to return to you our heartfelt thanks for the many acts of kindness shown us by you while we have been under your parental guardianship. We should have preferred to do this on your festival day, but, unfor- tunately, that day will not arrive until we are far away from you. May we ask as a favor, since we cannot celebrate that day with you, that you will remember us in a pleasant and invigorating ride behind the " good steed " Donatus, which you were so kind as to receive from us, and to name in our honor ? This would in part compensate us for the pleasure of which we must be deprived by our absence. NOTKE DAME. 221 Some of US look buck with pleasure upon the three years that you have occupied your present res^^onsible position as Superior and President of our beloved Alma Mater, and we all call to mind with grateful hearts the w^atchful interest you have always shown for our wel- fare. And, young and inexperienced though we are, we have always felt that your position, subject to many severe trials, has not been agreeable in the usual sense of the term, but has only been made so by the pleasure you always take in doing good, especially in seeing all those under your charge S23ending their college days agreeably and profitably. If we have satisfied your just expectations, together with those of our parents, in this particular, we feel that we have given you the highest pleasure possible on our part, provided only we continue in the outside world the good course we have followed here under your direction and that of our other beloved superiors. For our part, we have been doubly happy, inasmuch as our deportment and success in study have been agree- able to you and to all those interested in us, as well as useful to ourselves. More than all, we have been blessed in the ministrations of sacred truth which we have received at your hands and in the holy atmosphere in which we have breathed during these precious days of our youth. Going forth from these dear halls, we shall always hold in fondest recollection the scenes and the lessons of these thrice happy years, hoping that our future life may correspond with the blessed opportunities which you, under God, have given us, and praying that His bless- ing, as our prayers, shall always be with you. Your affectionate children. The Students of Xotre D.^ie. 222 UNIVERSITY OF ADDEESS FEOM THE STUDENTS OF THE UNIYERSITY TO KEY. A. LEMOJ^OTER, S. S. C, YICE PRESIDENT AIS^D PREFECT OF STUDIES. [Read by James O'Reilly.] Peveeend Sik : — In the name of all the students of the three departments of this University, I beg, on this a Festival of the Silver Jubilee, to offer you the most sincere congratulations on the happy conclusion of a a period of twenty-five years, during so large and so flourishing a part of which you have held offices of high authority and responsibility in this institution — the pre- fectures of discipline, of religion, of health, and of studies, consecutively. It is worthy of remark in the history of J^otre Dame, that the chief epoch of her most remarkable prosperity dates from your appearance here as an officer of the house. Can we do justice to the great and noble qualities we have seen manifested by you in the various functions allotted to you — to your firmness, decision and zeal for repressing disorders, as Prefect of Discipline — to your piety as Prefect of Relgion — your fatherly tenderness as Prefect of Health, and, in fine, that equal and ceasl ess fostering care extending over all the branches of science and literature, which we observe in the exercise of your last and most arduous office of Prefect of Studies ? No. We must wait, until riper experience shall unfold to us the difficulties and trials of the offices you liaA^e had to fill — we must wait until we have gone through some part of our own destined struggle in the battle of life to enable us fully to appre- ciate the great qualities we have seen in you. To wish from our hearts that your future career during NOTRE DAME. 223 the coming tTventy-five years which are destined to complete the Golden Jubilee of Kotre Dame, may be as noble and as useful as that part of it already past, is super- fluous on onr part. We know, dear Father, that the sterling qualities of your head and heart — that your devotion to the interests of Catholic literature and science, and to the prosperity of this their most favored chosen home in the West, can lead to no other result. You have seen Xotre Dame comparatively small — you will see our University still further enlarged. As year after year goes by, you will not only see, but you will be the efficient cause of further addition to the fame which Notre Dame has already acquired. You will have the satisfaction of looking back on labors which have contributed so much to the building up of an edifice whose star, always on the ascendant, shall acquire new brightness every year, till its rays reach, not only the extreme confines of the United States, but even the boundaries of the habitable world. Such, Rev. and Dear Father, is the glorious future in store for you, and though many others like us may throng around your professorial chair and listen to the words of wisdom which flow from your lips, yet none, however they may surpass us in eloquence, can exceed us in the hearty good will with which we ofter you our congratulations on this festive occasion of the Silver Jubilee of Xotre Dame. AYe are, Keverend and Dear Father, Your devoted, attached pupils and friends. The Studexts of the Uxiveksity. 224 UNIVERSITY OF ADDRESS TO KEY. FATHER SPILLARD, PREFECT OF DISCIPLINE, AT THE CLOSE OF THE JUNE EXAMIlSrATIONS, 1869. [Read by Win. A. Walker.] At the close of this scholastic year, when we are all about to separate, some for a short time, others perhaps never again to meet in this world, we, the Students of Notre Dame, desire to manifest our love and esteem for you ; as well as to express our appreciation of your untiring zeal in our behalf, and therefore take advan- tage of this opportunity of showing that we have not been unmindful of you. Your position, indeed, is one which requires in its fulfilment many and difficult duties, duties toward God, yourself, our parents. Tlie execution of the rules which fall to your lot to administer and preserved intact is certainly a responsible position. That you have been faithful in the discharge of this trust cannot be denied. We can, with unfeigned pleasure, look back on the past year ; for it was one which rarely falls to the lot of the students, one which, besides the information we secured, bestowed upon us blessings, incomparably more precious — those of word and example. We do not and never shall forget the care antl anxiety with which you watched over our interests, the self-sacrificing zeal manifested for our W'Clfare and your scrupulous unremitting vigilance in transcending the requirements of simple duty. May you, then. Rev. Father, persevere in that sphere of usefulness you have so admirably begun, and may the noble sentiments by which you have been guided, ever continue an incentive for even higher aspirations NOTRE DAME. 225 and may God bless and preserve your life, and may you finally secure an imperishable crown, the reward of your zeal and devotedness ; this is the sincere wish and prayer of the Students of Notre Dame. Twenty-fifth Annual Commencement and Silver Jubilee of the University of Notre Dame, June 22d and 23d, 1869. PROGEAMME. TUESDAY FORENOON. Six o'clock A. M. Solemn High Mass. Celebrant, Very Rev. Father Sorin, S.S.C., Superior General. Deacon, Rev. E. B. Kilroy. Sub Deacon, Rev. P. P. Cooney, S.S.C. Master of Ceremonies, Rev. D. J. Spillard, S.S.C. 7:30. Breakfast. 9:30. Reception of the Alumni in the Grand Parlor. Song and chorus of the Alumni Association, by the Singing Societies. Solo, by Prof. M. T. Corby, A. M. ; composed for the occasion. Words by Rev. M. B. Brown, S.S.C, music by Max Girac, LL.D. 10 o'clock. Meeting of the Alumni. AFTERNOON. 1 p. M. Banquet of the Alumni. 6. Supper. 7 o'clock, evening entertainment. Grand Entrance March N. D. U. Brass Band Overture Orchestra Grand Cantata (composed expressly for the occasion, words by Rev. M. B. Brown, S.S.C, miisic by M. Girac, LL.D.,) given by the Musical Societies of the University. Greek Speech W. A. Walker Music, Piano, 8 hands, D. Wile, J. A. O'Reilly, A. Hemsteger, J. Vocke 15 226 uiavEESiTT of Latin Address. '. "W. P. McClain Song V. Hackman Address from the Philodemic Society Jas. Cunnea Song (Kuchen) Jas. Edwards Address from the St. Edwards Society D. A. Clarke Symphony Orchestra Play— RICHELIEU. A DRAMA IN FIVE ACTS. [Eemodeled for the occasion.] Presented by the members of the Thespian Association under the direction of Prof. M. T. Corby, A. M. Dramatis Personce. Richelieu M. S. Ryan Louip the Thirteenth L. B. Logan Duke of Orleans A. W. Arrington De Mauprat J. J. Fleming De Beringhen W. P. Rhodes Joseph H. B. Keeler Huguet F. Ingersoll Francois H. P. Morancy First Courtier James O'Reilly Captain of Archers P. Barrett First Secretary R. L. Akin Second Secretary Thos. Dillon Third Secretary J. A. Fox Governor of Bastile J. Wilson First Page to Orleans J. Eisenman Courtiers, Pages, Conspirators, Officers, Soldiers, etc. Between acts music from the Orchestra and Band alternately. Grand march for retiring. f WEDNESDAY FORENOON. 7 o'clock. Breakfast. 8:30 o'clock. Commencement Exercises. Grand Entrance March N. D. U. Brass Band Overture Orchestra Address from the St. Cecilia Society D. J. Wile Song (chorus), Vincent Hackman, Robert Staley and others of the St. Cecilia Society. Speech, Scientific Department H. B. Keeler NOTRE DAME. 227 Piano D.J. Wile Speech, Commercial Department A. B. White Waltz Orchestra Speech, Law Department J. J. Fleming Music Orchestra THE PRODIGAL LAW STUDENT. A DRAMA IN FOUR ACTS. Written for and performed by the St. Cecilia Philomathean Association of the Junior Collegiate Department. Prologue Mark M. Foote Music Orchestra CAST OF CHARACTERS : FREDERICK, a Law Student R. STALEY Mr. Martin, His Father D. J. Wile Alfred, His Friend F. Dwyer Angelo, His Brother M. Foote Tighttist, A Wall Street Broker C. Burdell Mr. Richards, A Friend of Mr. Martin P. O'Connell Prof. Allgood, Teacher of Angelo J. W. Coppinger Gen. Watson, Com. of Zouaves P Cochrane Harry, ) ( V. Hackman FosSr, F"-^^ °f ^'-'-'^ G, McCann^; Eugene, ) ( W. Clarke Mr. O'Flaherty, (late of the Emerald Isle) Jas. Deehan Doctor Fuzby A. Hemsteger Jesse Henry O'Neill Jake, ] ( C. Hutchings IptceJServants U: rJSL Samuel, ) ( J. McHugh 1st Citizen E. Bahm 2d Citizen J. Combs 1st Newsboy M. Mahony 2d Newsboy T. Arrington Zouaves, Citizens, etc. {C. Marrantette F. Spencer J. Nash Admiral Ross .L. Wilson Captain Henderson Willie Clarke 228 UNIVERSITY OF Epilogue Willie Clarke Junior Valedictory J. W. Coppinger GRAND TABLEAU. March for Retiring N. D. U. Brass Band During the play there will be appropriate songs and music. Dinner. 12 o'clock. AFTERNOON. Solo and Chorus • • • Philharmonics First address from the Minims Eddy DeGroot Second address from the Minims George H. Jenkins Solemn Distribution of Premiums, etc. Music N. D. U. Brass Band Chorus, What beams so bright (Kreutzer) Philharmonics Poem Prof. T. E. Howard, A. M. Chorus, Praise of the Soldier (Boieldieu) Philharmonics Speech, Junior Collegiate Department Mark M Foote Farewell Song, Junior Department Vincent Hackmann Chorus, Where would I be ? (Zolner) Philharmonics Valedictory J. A. O'Reily Grand Cantata Musical Societies GONFEBRING OF DEGREES. Distribution of Premiums. Awarding of Premiums in Commercial Department, of Prizes in Classical, Scientific, Commercial and Preparatory Departments. Awarding of Second Honors. Awarding of First Honors. Music Band Oration of the Day. Grand Retiring March N. D. U. Cornet Band Wlien we say that the foregoing lengthy programme, extending over the space of two entire days, was fully carried out, and gave complete satisfaction to the im- mense concourse of people assembled at [N'otre Dame on this brilliant anniversary, we shall perhaps have said sufficient to make it evident that the celebration of the Silver Jubilee was all and even more than the warmest friends of the University could have anticipated. As will be seen from the programme, Tuesday was NOTEE DAME. 229 devoted almost exclusively to the Alumni. The reunion of these gentlemen, after so long a separation from their beloved Alma Mater, was certainly the most interesting and affecting feature of the Jubilee. Their reception by the venerable Founder of the University was especially touching. From many he had parted years ago, while his silver locks were yet dark, and while they, now grown to man's estate, were mere impulsive youths. Scarcely could he recognize in those men before him the boys he had known so well in other days ; and scarcely could they believe that the venerable gentleman before them was the ardent young priest of their memory. Yet all was not changed ; the beaming eye, the pleasant smile, and the warm heart were still the same, and soon the dear old times were brought back to all. A fuller report of the meeting of the Alumni and of the subsequent Banquet will be given in the second edi- tion of this memorial. EVENING ENTEKTAINMENT. The grand Cantata at the opening of the evening entertainment deserves special mention for the splendid effect produced upon the spell-bound audience. We hope hereafter to present a criticism on this brilliant produc- tion which shall do it full justice. The Greek and Latin addresses had the two points of excellence most admired in such productions by an appreciative audience. They were short, and the pro- nunciation was classically correct. In the English addresses from the rival literary socie- ties we were treated to pure draughts from the '^ well of 230 UNIVERSITY OF English nndeiiled." Messrs. Cnnnea and Clarke will certainly add to the literary reputation of their Alma Mater. Interspersed with these were many choice pieces of music, sweetest of all the beautiful song so deliciously rendered by ]^otre Dame's favorite young songster, Master Hackman. Then came the chief feature of the evening, THE PLAY. "Richelieu" was chosen as a fit play for the occasion, but it had to undergo many changes in order to render it suitable to male charac- ters only. To do this, the very important part that Julia, the Cardi- nal's ward, sustains in the play had to be distributed among the other characters, and yet be supposed throughout the play but not appearing on the stage. In so doing, the character of the different scenes is somewhat changed,but the integrity of the plot of the play is entirely preserved. The language in many unimportant places is changed to suit the above mentioned circumstance. Many ideas illustrative of particular traits in the character of Richelieu have been cut in order to render it fit for the ears of the audience in attendance. Of course the actors who took parts are not professionals ; this we must keep in mind when reviewing their efforts. They are members of an association which has been in existence for very many years in the College, whose object is to celebrate, by the production of dramas, the Religious, National and other festivals. The director of the asso- ciation chooses and arranges the plays, and afterwards acts as critic, and drills them in the voice and action. M. S. Ryan, of Grand Rapids, Mich., assumed the difficult role of Richelieu. In this character we have represented almost all the stronger passions of great minds and the sentiments at one time of gloom, despondency, at another joy, now remorse, now piety ; honor, affection, nobility, cunning, hypocrisy, patriotism, and all the passions a great statesman could affect. To say Mr. Ryan took the character well and portrayed these feelings, is to say that his voice possesses compass, power, flexibility and variety, and that he used them with that judg- ment which a natural delicacy of mind can alone supply. Each scene is of course susceptible of many different conceptions ; his was very good in many and excellent in others. He deserves much praise fot At the Twenty-fifth Annual Commencement Exercises and Silver Jubilee of the University of Notre Dame, Ind., the following Farewell was euno; by Master Vin- cent TI. Ilackmann, of St. Louis. Mo., the favorite little musician and much admired vocalist of the University : Farewell Song. Another year has passed away, A year of varied joys, A year of peace, of play and toil, Of wealth to College boys. And now we'er going home again, To rest from toil awhile ; To feel a mother's fond embrace, And meet a father's smile. But, ah ! a tear-drop dims our eye To part with friends so dear; With friends w^e've known at Notre Dame Throughout this happy year. We now must say that word Farewell ! To sharers of our joj^s — To teachers ever warmly kind, To prefects, friends and boys. But we'll return in Autumn days. With merry laugh and song; To take our place within these halls, Amid the studious throng. Then for a while dear friends Farewell ! The joys of home invite ; May home endearments bless you all. And make vacation bright! NOTRE DAME. 231 the studying of the character and his untiring diligence and enthusi- asm in all the performances of the Society. The character of Baradas was taken by Mr. A. B. White, of Han- over, 111. In Mr. White's hands Baradas was a good intriguer, a flattering courtier, an ambitious man, worthy of being deemed a rival to Richelieu, and a man possessing an intelligence sufficiently subtle to obtain a thorough knowledge of all the characters with whom he was dealing. Mr. White's voice is pure, clear, pleasant and distinct. All of his scenes were good, some were excellent, none below an intelligent standard. " De Mauprat" was rendered by Mr. J, J. Fleming, of Burlington, Iowa. De Mauprat was a young, brave, and honorable soldier, straight- forward in character, and consequently easily made the dupe of many parties in the drama. Mr. Fleming's conception was quite original, and he easily sustained his energy throughout. Mr. H. P. Morancy, of Versailles, Ky., interpreted " Francois." Mr. Morancy made Francois, a young, faithful, honorable and valiant character. His carriage and action were graceful and his voice as variable as necessary to play as important and interesting a charac- ter as Francois is. " Louis XIII " was given by Mr. L. B. Logan, of Cleveland, Ohio. This character does not require the energy and variety of most of the others, but was played with the becoming dignity and nice apprecia- tion of circumstances which should characterize the King. " Joseph," was taken by H. B. Keeler, of Union, Mich. The diffi- culty of rendering so dubious a character is always apparent, but Mr. Keeler made him crafty, politic, and original, almost verging on the comic, and altogether very interesting. James O'Reilly, of Reading, Penn., assumed the character of " First Courtier," to which was added much of Julia's. Grace and dignity seemed to be the principal features which characterized his acting, heightened by a grave and sonorous voice. " De Beringhen " was well handled by Mr. Wm. P. Rhodes, of Savanna, 111. His acting of the character assisted very much in add- ing variety to so serious a play. Mr. A. W. Arrington, of Chicago, Ills., took the part of Orleans, and succeeded. Mr. Ingersoll as Huguet, J. Wilson as Governor of the Bastile, J. Gavitt as DeLorme, R. L. Akin as First Secretary of State, Thos. Dillon as Second Secre- tary, J. A. Fox as Third Secretary, entered with great earnestness into the proper rendition of their respective characters, and made every scene in which they were, a picture of real life. The great number of Arquebusiers, Archers and Pages rendered the court scene very imposing. The painting and designing of the scenes were executed by Prof C. A. B. Von Weller, and did that gentleman as much, if not more, honor than his preceding work during the year. 232 UNIVERSITY OF WEDNESDAY FORENOON. This was Commencement Day, proper, the great day of the College year. Parents, guardians and friends, assembled from all portions of the Union, were come to see the loved ones again, to behold theni receive their premiums, honors and degrees ; and to witness them upon the mimic stage, or listen to the young orators or musicians as thought and melody floated upon the enchanted air, bringing to each heart in that vast audi- ence hope for the future and thankfulness for the past. Mr. Wile's address was a well-written production, and delivered with the force and spirit characteristic of that young gentleman. The orations of Messrs. Keeler, White and Fleming, representing respectively the Scientific, Commercial and Law Departments, were quite above the average of pro- ductions presented on such occasions. Mr. Keeler, a graduate of the present year, is certainly a young gen- tleman whose mind is well stored with the lore of sci- ence and disciplined in the love of wisdom. THE JUmOKS' PLAY. The programme of this play, as usual, set expectation on tiptoe. 'Nor did the play disappoint the high anticipations of the friends of the Juniors. The curtain rose, revealing "the mimic field of strife." the chequered scenes of joy and grief in the journey of life, the trials, temptations, sad fall and final repentance of the prodigal law student. The play itself, written by a talented lady friend, is too well known to require any criticism at our hands. Of NOTRE DAME. 233 the actors, some who were, perhaps, like Horace's hero, born actors, laughed and wept, and walked and talked, and fought and bled and died with a vim, as if they were used to and rather liked it, their motto, a very good one too, being the energetic dictum of some wise old philosopher (name forgotten) : '' Quod agis^ ^^^," or, in plain English, "What you do, do!^^ D. J. Wile acted the broken-hearted father to perfec- tion ; his every word was the embodiment of a sigh, and his very looks were suggestive of tears. And "like father, like son," might with equal truth be said of Mr. Fred. (Staley), while dear, generous Angelo (Foote), proved himself worthy of the close relationship he bore them. Tightfist (Burdell), a real, close old miser, died hard, his last words and thoughts, like Shylock's or an army contractor's, being of his ducats and bonds, and clutching in his grasp, till his last gasp, the almighty dollar. The rival newsboys (Mahony and Arrington,) will make their fortunes if they continue long enough at the business; but such wide-awake, energetic lads are destined for a higher destiny than peddling papers. '^ Palmam qui meruit^ ferat^'' a proverb venerable for its age and to be honored for its truth, reminds us not to pass in silence those who particularly distinguished them- selves in the rendering of their respective roles ; hence, in the list of those who blamelessly lived two lives at one and the same time we are happy to rank Messrs. Cop- pinger, McHugh, Hutchings, Clarke, Dwyer, O'Connell, Cochrane, McCartney and Hays. As for the rest, commodores, generals, high and low privates, land and sea men, citizens, servants et id omne genus, time diligently employed will increase their use- fulness to society at large and also the pleasure with which we will hail them when again they cheer us with their presence. 234 UNIVEESITY OF WEDNESDAY AFTEKNOON. The afternoon exercises opened very pleasantly with the Minims' addresses. Little Eddy DeGroot and George Jenkins may yet become quite as ponderous as their older brethren, but they will never give more delight than they did to-day. Mark Foote certainly made his mark in his speech on " Boys " from the Junior Department. It was in the first place a sparkling piece in itself and well suited to the oratorical powers of Mark, and then it was delivered in that spirited and manly manner so characteristic of the young gentleman. DISTRIBUTION OF PREMIUMS, HONORS, DEGREES, ETC. This was the portion of the entertainment which was, doubtless, of most interest to the students, and, probably, also to many of the more sensible of their elders looking on. The student who retires from the platform loaded with honors is indeed the one who has done best; all else is as dross compared to the pure metal that stands the test of this final crucible. In the second edition of this Memorial we^ shall en- deavor to give a complete report of this most important portion of the programme. The valedictory was touching in sentiment and deliv- ered in a clear, earnest voice. Many were the sad thoughts, in all this joy, as the words of parting passed gently from ear to ear, suggesting the mutability of all human joys, but the stabiUty of those which are of the better, the real, life beyond. The magnificent cantata was again given, and the pleased audience passed quietly out and away, to think for many, many a day of the happy Silver Jubilee of Notre Dame. notre daaee. 235 The Hymn of the Jubilee. a cantata. [Written expressly for the twenty-fifth anniversary of the Univer- sity of Notre Dame by Rev. M B. Brown ; and set to music for the occasion by Professor M. E. Girac, LL. D.] I. —Introductory —Recitative. With joy we dw^ell upon the past, When honor crowns our toil ; But 'tis better by far- -'tis a joy that will last — To meet with success in a noble cause, Which heaven approves, while the good give applause, And the heart contracts no guile. II. — Initial Grand Chorus. Then, Father Almighty, we bless thee and praise, For thy right hand hath guided us safe in our ways ; To thy" name be the glory, to man be the gain, And to us the reward ever true to remain. III.— Solo - Bass. When first our founder crossed the main To bless Columbia's noble youth. He chose this spot -a virgin plain — Yet subject to the red man's reign. On which to light the torch of truth. YV.- Solo— Tenor. Years glided by ; that sacred fire. At first a feeble, struggling ray, Aroused the flame of strong desire In freedom's sons to rise up higher And catch the gleam of wisdom's day. V. — Duett — Tenor and Bass. In hundreds from the East and West, In hundreds from the South and North, The youth of every creed and quest Sought out this fount of science blest. 236 imiVEESITY OF Sought out this spring of taintless birth To quench the spirit's longing thirst ; And, feeling its unequaled worth, Declared it of pure founts the first. VI . — Solo — Becitatwe, And to-day we pause in our onward career — 'Tis the day of the Silver Jubilee ; Yes, since truth made her home in this Western wild Old Time hath recorded the twenty-fifth year, And bids us rejoice with untrammeled glee, As he points to the future of golden build. And to millions of youth Fired with love of truth, Thronging round this fair home of the wise and free. YII. — Grand Closing Chorus. Then glory and praise to the Father of Light, For goodness so constant and kind. And honor to him who with heaven-aided might And the zeal of a mastering mind So patiently nourished this truth-giving light Till its rays can no more be confined. ^ ONG OF THE AlUMNI. June 23, 1869. ■WORDS BT REV. M. B. BROWN. MUSIC BT PROFESSOR M. E. GIRAC, LL. D. 'Tis sweet to meet and warmly greet The triends of other days. Whose cheerful smile, unmixed with guile, Did oft our hearts from gloom beguile, 'Mid youth's unsteady ways. Chorus.-— 'Tis joy to meet and warmly greet The friends of our college days — Those earnest boys who shared our joys. Our sorrows, our toils and plays. NOTRE DAME. 237 'Tis sweet to meet and friendly greet, 'Mid scenes we've loved in youth ; Our boyhood's time and youthful prime Are blended with those scenes sublime — The scenes of peace and truth. Chorus. : 'Tis joy to meet, etc. To-day that joy, without alloy, \ Makes glad our willing heart ; i The friends we loved and often proved, J The cherished scenes our youth approved, -i A grateful sense impart. Chorus: 'Tis joy to meet, etc. \ An honored band now take their stand Within those sacred halls, Where, years ago, in youth's bright glow, They tore the mask from Science' brow And rent the Classics' palls. Chorus : 'Tis joy to meet, etc. With laurel crown and fair renown They left this cherished place ; With richer store thej" come once more To view the scenes they loved before And youthful joys retrace. Chorus: 'Tis joy to meet, etc. O'er all this scene, the " Peerless Queen" In sculptured beauty stands ; Her form so fair recalls the care In which unnumbered millions share. The students heart responds. Chorus : 'Tis joy to meet, etc. Then welcome true and honor due To friends of other days ; To those who wear the laurel fair Bestowed by Alma Mater's care, Their deeds shall be their praise. Chorus : 'Tis joy to meet, etc. 238 UNIVERSITY OF ''lifjS'r valedictory has been inserted on account of its brevity.-CoMPiL^R. JUNIOI^ yALEDlCTOI^. DELIVERED BY J. W. COPPINGER. Those Chiming bells that called us, day by day, To chapel, class-room, study-hall and piay, And never called us yet in vam, O boys, Companions dear of college griefs and pys, Now" from the belfry sadly soundmg, sigh, With me, to you, to-day, " good-hy, good-hy ! Valete, valete I—fare ye well I Ah t fellow members of " Cecilia's " band. Whose name and fame are known throughout the land, Our harp no more, no more our golden lyre. Shall ring melodious 'mid the tune ul choir ! Valete, valete f—fare ye well ! Kind Prefects and Professors though we part To meet no more for aye, each grateful heart ShaU ffiard ?he gift of knowledge that you gave- A Satire prize§ through life-unto the grave ! Valete, valete /—fare ye well ! And ve, O reverend Fathers, wise and good. Who uught us by example how we should Serve God on earth if we would reign with him 'Mid radiant hosts of sinless cherubim T est erring, we from virtue's paths should stiay, MoTe lonely and more hopeless they ah m( ! When forcecl by frowning late to par from thee. But part we must, from fairy lake and dell. And grove and sacred tane where angels dwell Since^God so wills it, then, to all a sad farewell! Valete, valett I— fare ye well ! NOTRE DAME. 239 TWENTY-FIFTH ANNUAL CATALOGUE OF THE OFFICERS AND PEOFESSOES OF THE University of Notre Dame, IlS^DIAKA, Fop the Academic Year 1868-9. Board of Trustees VERY REV. E. SORIN, S. S. C, President. REV. A. GRANGER, S. S. C, Vice-President. REV. W. CORBY, S. S. C, Chancellor. REV. N. H. GILLESPIE, S. S. C, Treasurer. REV. A. LEMONNIER, S. S. C, Secretary. 240 UNIYEESITY OF Officers and A/Lembers of the Faculty : | Eev. W. CORBY, S. S. C, President. Rev. a, LEMONNIER, S S. C, Vice-President, Director of Studies and Prof es- sor of French. Rev. a. granger, S. S. C, Pref. of Religion and Prof, of the Evidences and Principles of Christianity. ; Rev. N. H. GILLESPIE, S. S. C, Professor of English Literature. Rev. D. J. SPILLARD, S. S, C, Prefect of Discipline. j Rev. FERDINANDO PIETRO BAPTISTA, D. D., Professor of Theology. \ Rev. J. C. CARRIER, S. S. C, Librarian and Professor of Botany., Mineralogy and Geology. Rev. J. FRERE, S. S. C, Professor of French. Rev. M. B. BROWN, S. S. C, Professor of Logic and Philosophy. Rev. T. L. VAGNIER, S. S. C, Professor of Natural Philosophy and Chemistry. Rev. W. RUTHMANN, S. S. C, Professor of German. Rev. p. LAUTH, S. S. C, Professor of German. Rev. L. NEYRON, Professor of Anatomy, Physiology and Hygenie. Mk. JOHN LAUTH, S. S. C, Professor of German. Mr. JACOB LAUTH, S. S. C, Adjunct Professor of Latin. Mr. CAMBEL, S. S. C, Professor of French. Mr. J. A. O'CONNELL, S. S. C, Adjunct Professor of Greek and Latin. Mr. F. X. DERRICK, S. S. C, Adjunct Professor of Latin. T. E. HOWARD, A. M., Professor of English Literature and Astronomy. J. A. LYONS, A. M., Professor of Latin and English. W. M. IVBRS, A. M., Professor of Mathematics, and Secretary of the Faculty. NOTRE DAME. 241 A. J. STAGE, A. M., Professor of Mathematics. L. G. TONG, Master of Accounts, Professor of Book-keeping and Commercial Law. M. T. CORBY, A. M., Professor of Vocal Music. M. A. J. BAASEN, A. M., Professor of Greeks Latin and German. A. A. GRIFFITH, A. M., Professor of Elocution. M. T. COLOVIN, L. L. B., Professor of Law. 0. A. B. VON WELLER, Professor of Drawing and Painting. C. J. LUNDY, Professor of Penmanship and Ass't Prof., of Book-keeping. W. T. JOHNSON, A. B., Professor of Greek and Latin. BROTHER PHILIP, J. S. C, Assistant Teacher of Book-keeping and English. BROTHER FRANCIS DE SALES, J.S.C, Professor of Geography and History. BROTHER CLAUD, J. S. C, Professor of Hebrew. BROTHER SIMEON, J. S. C, Teacher of the Irish Language. PROFESSORS OF MUSIC : BROTHER BASIL, J. S. C. MAX GIRAC, LL. D., Musical Doctor. J. ONEILL, Musical Doctor. BROTHER JOSEPH CAL., J. S. C. BROTHER LEOPOLD, J. S. C. E. LILLY, S. S. C. teachers in preparatory department: BROTHER BENJAMIN, J. S. C. BROTHER JOSEPH CAL., J. S. C. BROTHER CELESTINE, J. S. C, assistant prefects OF discipline : BROTHER BENOIT, J. S. C. BROTHER ALBAN, J. S, C. BROTHER FLORENTIUS, J. S. C. BROTHER ALBERT, J. S. C. BROTHER CHARLES, J. S. C. BROTHER JOHN, J. S. C. BROTHER PAUL, J. S. C. secretary: assistant secretary: BROTHER GABRIEL, J. S. C. BROTHER CELESTINE, J. S. C. 16 242 UNIVERSITY OF A 'jfd) 'ili A Irckonfratoniig 4M il^^sd jjirgin jprg. This Society was established in 1845, and is designed i for Catholic students alone. Its principal object is to i obtain, through the intercession of the Blessed Mother of I the Redeemer, the conversion of sinners throughout the world. Students of the Senior Department only are ! admitted into this Sodality. Rev. A. Geangee, S.S.C, Director. James Edwaeds, President. James Cunnea, Yice-President. James Dickinson, Recording Secretary. P. McKeon, Corresponding Secretary. J. Zahm, Librarian. NOTEE DAME. 243 k^ §jsrlg Mmgiels This interesting Society, consisting of the Students of the Junior and Minim Departments, was organized as early as the year 184:8. Its object is to secure the pro- tection of the Blessed Spirits by a great purity of life and a ready submission to what duty requires. pf f jppj^g: Rev. D. J. Spill ARD, S. S. C, Director. L. F. Wilson, First Yice-President, John Alber, Second Yice-President. Mark M. Foote, Secretary. F. P. DwYER, Treasurer. W. B. Clarke, Librarian. P. TiNAN, Assistant Librarian, Philip Cochrane, Censor. 244: UNIVERSITY OF lodalitg of ovi\ Idg of % mtrd mmi, OIia--A.3SriZEID Iwai-A.'Y, 1868- Yery Rev. A. Gteangee, S.S.C, Director. Brother Florentitjs, S.S.C, Assistant Director. John W. Coppingek, President. Edwin Bahm, Yice-President. John P. Broderick, Secretary. 1 NOTBE DAME. " 245 Forty-five Members. pff JPFJ^^ = Brother Albert, Director. Gr. Lyons, President. W. Canivan, Yice-President. A. Trentman, Secretary. H. Jones, Treasurer. C. Campeau, Librarian. G. Gross, Assistant Librarian. 246 UNIVERSITY OF The obiect of this Society, organized in 1851, (origin- ally under the name of the St. Aloysius Literary and Historical Society,) is the cultivation of eloquence and the acquisition of an accurate knowledge ot history Being essentiaUy a debating society, its members cannot fail to acquire a certain facility in writing and liuency m debate. Its ordinary meetings are held weekly, on Tuesday, from 7 o'clock to 9 o'clock P. M. Pf f JPF^^V FII^ST SESSIOlSr. Eev. D. J. Spillaed, S.S.C, President. William A, Walker, Yice-President. James Cunnea. Recording Secretary. A. J. Reilly, Corresponding Secretary. William P. McClain, Treasurer.. Thomas Johnson, Librarian. Michael Carney, Assistant Librarian. John A, Zahm, Thomas Heery, Censors. SEOOlSriD SESSIOJSE- Rev. D. J. Spillard, S.S.C, President. William A. Walker, Yice-President. James A. O'Reilly, Recording Secretary. A. J. Reilly, Corresponding Secretary. James F. Edwards, Treasurer. John A. Zahm, Librarian. Thomas F. Heery, Assistant Librarian. James Cunnea, C. H. Ilgenfritz, Censors. 1 NOTRE DAME. 247 The object of this Association is the improvement of its members in Literature and Elocution, and the means employed for the attainment of this object are: the reading of original essays and the discussion of literary and historical subjects. The officers during the scholastic years of 1868 and 1869 were as follows: jR'iRST ^ESSION. ^ECOND ^ESSION. Rev. M. B. BROWN, S. S. C, President. J. P. ROGERS, Vice-Pregident. H. B. KEELER, Secretary. D. A. CLARKE, Treasurer. A. B. WHYTE, Librarian. T. W. EWING, Assistant Librarian. T. F. O'MAHONY, D. TIGHE, Censors Rev. M. B. BROWN, S. S. C, President. J. E. SHANNAHAN, Vice-President H. B. KEELER, Secretary. D. A. CLARKE, Treasurer. A. W. ARRINGTON, Librarian. T. W. EWING, Assistant Librarian. L. B. LOGAN, D. TIGHE, Censors. Twenty Members. 248 UNIVERSITY OP 't Forty Members. This Society, one of the oldest and best at IS'otre Dame, is, at the same time, a debating, dramatic and musical association. Its exercises also include public reading, declamations, essays and a moot court. It has a good library, and numbers forty members — the elite of the Junior Collegiate Department. The plays acted on the stage for the purpose of bringing out the elocutionary powers of its members are written especially for them, and are intended to increase the love of virtue and righteousness. Their highly moral plays will soon be published by the St. Cecilia Society for the benefit of other societies and institutions which may be in need of such plays. NOTRE DAME. 249 Rev. A. Lemonnier, S.S.C, Director. Professor J. A. Lyons, A. M., President. Prof. C. A. B. Yon Weller, F.R. A., Pres. Dramatic Br. J. F. Pyan, Vice-President. J. CoppiNGER, Vice-President of the Dramatic Branch. D. J. AViLE, Vice-President of the Historic Branch. V. Hackmann, Vice-President of the Orpheonic Branch. M. FooTE, Secretary. James Dooley, Treasurer. R. McCarthy, Monitor. W. Clark, Ass't Monitor. M. Mahony, Corresponding Secretary. L. Wilson, Librarian. R. Staley, Assistant Librarian. F. DwYER, Assistant Director of Readers. P. O'CoNNELL, First Conductor of Public Entertainments. J. Deehan, Second Conductor of Public Entertainments. Rev. A. Lemonnier, S.S.C, Director. Professor J. A. Lyons. A. M., President. Prof C. A. B. Von Weller, F. R. A., Pres. Dramatic Br. John W. Coppinger, Vice-President. James J. Dooley, Vice-President of Dramatic Branch. David J. Wile, Vice-President of the Historic Branch. Vincent H. Hackmann, Vice-President Orpheonic Br. Mark M. Foote, Second Vice-President and Secretary. Edwin Bahm, Corresponding Secretary. James H. Deehan, Treasurer. Michael M. Mahony, Monitor. William B. Clarke, Assistant Monitor. L. F. Wilson, Librarian. Robert Staley, Ass't Lib'n. Frank Dwyer, Assistant Director of Readers. P. J. O'CoNNELL, First Conductor Public Entertainm'ts. Charles Marantette, Second Con. Pub. Entertainm'ts. Philip E. Cochrane, Sergeant-at-Arms. 250 UNIVERSITY OF Twenty Members. This Society was founded in the Spring of 1868 for ] the prosecution of scientific researches. It contains three Departments, devoted respectively to Natural I History, Physics and Mathematics. Rev. J. C. Carrier, S.S.C, Director, and Head Depart- ment ISTatural History. Eev. T. Yagnier, S.S.C, Head Department of Physics. Prof A. J. Stage, A. M., Head of Dep't of Mathematics. James A. Dickinson, Secretary. William P. McClain, Treasurer. Frank Crapser, Librarian. Henry C. Allen, Censor. NOTRE DAME. 251 I hcspian locietg. Thirty Members. This Association has for its object the celebration of all our festivals by dramatic representations. It also aims to cultivate in the students of the University a taste for the classical drama, by presenting the plays of the most able writers, whenever they can be adapted without too great a change of plot, to male characters only. ppFICERS OF THE JhESPIAN ^OCIETY. Professor M. T. Coeby, A. M., Director. H, B. Keeler, President. A. W. Arrington, Yice-President. A. B. White, Recording Secretary. William P, Phodes, Treasurer. M. S. Pyan, First Stage Manager. John S. Gavitt, Second Stage Manager. James O'Peilly, First Usher. John Fleming, Second Usher. P. L. Akin, Third Usher. L. B. Logan, First Censor. J. Wilson, Second Censor. 252 UNIVEESITY OF |lttIIiarmoitt4 Socictg Twenty Members. The object of this Society is to afford its members the opportunity of perfecting themselves in the theory and in the practice of sacred and secular vocal music, and to give dignity and spirit, by their performances, to the celebration of our religious, national and literary festi- vals. Its members meet twice a week. pPFICERS OF THE j^HILHARMONIC ^OCIETY. Professor M. T. Coeby, A. M., Director. M. S. Eyan, President. James Edwards, Yice-President. James O'Eeilly, Eecording Secretary. H. P. Moeanoy, Corresponding Secretary. "William P. Ehodes, Treasurer. Ivo BuDDEKE, Librarian. F. Ingersoll, First Censor. H. B. Keeler, Second Censor. NOTKE DAME. 253 Forty Members. Kev. J. C. Carrier, S.S.C, Director. Professor J. A. Lyons, A. M., President. Professor A. J. Stage, A. M., General Manager. William P. McClain, Orator. James Cunnea, Recording Secretary. William A. Walker, Corres. Secretary, J. M. MoRiARTY, Treasurer. Jacob Eisenman, Librarian. George Mc. Atkinson, ) jyf^rshals Elias D. Riddle, f Joseph Garhartstine, Ensign. J. A. Dickinson, T. F. Henry, Stage Managers. J. Francis Edwards, H. C. Allen, Ushers. 254: UNIVERSITY OF Officers — Professor Max Girac, LL. D., Conductor; Professor M. A. J. Baasen, A. M., President; Professor William Ivers, A. M,, General Censor; Professor Carl A. B. Yon Weller, F. K. A., Assistant General Censor; H. B. Keeler, B. S., Secretary; Peter McKeon, Treasurer; David Wile, Pianist; Brother Basil, S.S.C, Organist. Memhers of the Choral Union, Soprani. — V. Hackman, Robert Staley, Benjamin Heffernan, Chas. Hutchings, Reuben Hutcliings^ L. Hilsendegen, Joseph Campbell, M. Mahoney, Max. Ody. Alti. — Thomas Ward, Mark Foote, George Kaliman, John F. McHugh, J. Crevoisier, F. Nichols. Tenori. — Professor M. T. Corbj^, Professor M. A. J. Baasen, Pro- fessor William Ivers, William Rhodes, H. P. Morancy, M. Moriarty, Bernard Yocke, J. V. Diemer, Ivo Buddeke, F. IngersoU, Joseph Mulhall. Bassi.—RQY. P. Laulh, S.S.C, John Lauth, S.S.C, F. X. Derrick S.S.C, Professor C. A. B. Von Weller, Joseph Garharstine, John Zahm, Patrick Garrity, H. B. Keeler, Dennis Tighe, Peter McKeon, John Vocke. N. B. — This Society wears an appropriate badge. Officers — John O'J^eill, Director, Teacher and Leader; Joseph Garharstine, Carlton E. Sage, J. J. Fleming, Assistant Leaders; William A. Walker, President; John Yocke, Yice-President ; W. M. Bird, Treasurer L. W. ScHMEiDER, Corresponding Secretary; D. W CooNCE, Recording Secretary ; Bernard Yocke, First Censor; M. S. Ryan, Second Censor; D. J. Diemer, Librarian; A. Maierhofer, Assistant Librarian; James Purr AN, Flag Bearer. NOTRE DAME. 255 Officers — Professor M. Girac, Leader. Bro. Leopold, First Violin. Jos. Eumeley, First Yiolin. Y. Hack- MANN, First Yiolin. D. J. Diemer, First Yiolin. Prof. C. A. B. YoNWELLER, Second Yiolin. M. Foote, Sec- ond Yiolin. B. Yocke, Second Yiolin. Bro. Basil, Yiola. Bro. Joseph Calasanctius, Flute. Prof. Max GiRAC, Yiolincello. Prof. W. Ivers, Contra Bass. Prof. Jno. O'Neill, First Cornet. N. Shelton, Second Cornet. Jno. McHugh, Drum. [Exclusively for Members of the Band.] Offi/iers — John O'Neill, Director and Solo Cornetist. Bernard Yocke, Leading Yiolin. D. J. Diemer, First Yiolin. D. W. CooNCE, Second Yiolin. L. Schmeider, Second Yiolin. F. Metzoer, Second Yiolin. John MuLHALL, Yiola. Zac. Yanderveer, Flute, William A. Walker, Solo Horn. John Yocke, Solo Horn. Joseph Garhartstine, First Cornet. T. Dupuis, Sec- ond Cornet. A. Maierhofer, Contra Basso. Officers — Professor M. A. J. Baasen, M. A., Director; H. B. Keeler, President; J. P. Rogers, Yice-President ; Thomas O'Mahony, Secretaiy; H. L. Eisenman, Treas- urer; D. A. Clarke, First Censor; J. Eisenman, Sec- ond Censor — 12 members. 256 UNIVERSITY OF Officers — Professor M. A. J. Baasen, A. M., Presi- dent; James A. O'Keilly, Yice-President ; John P. Rogers, Secretary; Eufus McCarthy, Treasurer — 10 members. Officers — Bro. Francis de Sales, President ; J. Cur- ran, Yice-President ; D. A. Clarke, Secretary ; Porter Rhodes, Captain ; D. Tighe, Treasurer — 20 members. The list of officers for the second session, ending June, 1869, is as follows: Brother Benoit, Director; W. P. Rhodes, President; M. S. Ryan, Yice-President; A. B. White, Secretary; J. A. O'Reilly, Treasurer; P. Bar- rett, J. H. Lence, W. H. Sangster, Field Directors; James Wilson, Field Captain, first nine : A. J. Combs, Field Captain, second nine. iijit©!rpp8s© its© itdC ©Ocsfe^ Officers — Brother Alban, Director; William A. Walker, President; R. B. Coddington, Yice-President; James Cunnea, Secretary; Alfred W. Arrington, Treasurer; J. Fritts, L. Towne, R. B. Coddington, Field Directors ; John Fritts, Captain, first nine ; John Lacy, Captain, second nine — 21 members. NOTRE DAME. 257 ^Uf!> Qf tfe© iast ias© itCIl €t«b, Officei's — Brother Charles, Director ; E. P. Gambee, President ; H. Barlow, Yiee-President; J. W. O'Brien, Secretary, and Captain of the first nine ; J. Eisenman, Treasurer ; G. Webb, H. Strawn, G. Chane, Directors ; T. Dechant, Captain of the second nine ; R. Campeau, Censor — 30 members. Step @f tfti© West ias© itSll Qtuifee Officers — Brother Florentius, S.S.C, Director; John W. CoppiNGER, President ; James H. Deehan, Yice- President ; David J. Wile, Secretary ; W. B. Clarke, Treasurer; W. B. Small, Censor; J. W. Coppinger, Field Captain, first nine ; W. B. Clarke, Field Captain, second nine. O^^rs— Brother Eugene, Director; M. Daley, Pres- ident ; M. Walsh, Yice-President ; H. Clarke, Record- ing Secretary ; J. Roberts, Corresponding Secretary ; J. CosTELLO, Treasurer ; T. Hughes, Censor ; F. Bish, W. Hughes, J. Farrell, Field Directors ; J. Sullivan, Field Captain, first nine; J. Clarke, Field Captain^ second nine — 20 members. Y@yitif Amepka its© itCB ©kfe. Officers — Brother Florentius, Director ; M. Mahony, President; F. Spencer, Yice-President; J. F. McHugh, 17 258 UNIVEKSITT OF Secretary; C. Hutchings, Treasurer and Censor; M. "Wellington, Field Captain, first nine ; R. Staley, Field Captain, second nine; D. Hogan, Field Director — 18 members. Officers — Brother Albert, Director; H. Trentman, President ; E. Lyons, Yice-President ; F. Obert, Secre- tary ; G. Lyons, Treasurer ; A. Trentman, Field Cap- tain, first nine ; J. Ford, Field Captain, second nine — 23, members. iMj^tkt its© itilll Officers — Brother Barnabas, Director; W. Gamble, President; E. Gegan, Yice-President; J. Mulvaney, Secretary; P. Costello, Corresponding Secretary; T. Ward, Treasurer ; C. McCollister, Field Captain, first nine ; F. Murphy, Field Captain, second nine; M. Shill, Censor— -20 members. NOTRE DAME. 259 We cannot well conclude this book without the inser- tion of the following beautiful poem, composed by Pro- fessor T. E. Howard, A. M., for the presentation of a handsome set of altar vessels to Yery Rev. Father Sorin, Superior-General of Holy Cross. — Compiler. 'M:tt3§^ TO THE VERY REVEREND FATHER-GENERAI.. The following address was delivered on the occasion of the commemoration of St. Edward's Day, (the patronal festival of Ver}^ Rev. E. Sorin, General of the Order of Holy Cross, and founder of Notre Dame University,) October 13th, 1867 : Yery Reverend Father-General: On this thy patron feast, Renowned Saint Edward's Day, 'Tis ours, the privilege blest, With music, song and play. To greet thee, and with gladness till thy breast. Ours be the joy to say what thou for God hast done. For Edward, and for her whose God is her dear Son. In flistant ages, and in other climes. While one great State was slowly formed. The golden sun a thousand times Rolled out the shining years. 'Twas thus while chaos stormed The might^y spheres, 260 TJ'NIYEKSITt OF 'Mid frost and heat and rain, Tlieir battered sides still beat amain, At length, in motions tuned to heavenly rhymes. Came, polished, forth from hoary eld to happier times. Not so this mighty modern empire grows ; Full-formed and phoenix-like it sprung From ashes dead to life that glows, Complete in this new world. i 'Twas thus when Time was young, j Unbroken whirled The primal planet host, j And seemed in dreadful ruin lost, ) Till fragments formed as shattered squadrons close, j And new-born globes, complete in strength and beauty, rose. j And as our Union sprang to life ' | From riven Europe's flying bands, Strong with the strife Of those old lands. And rich with culture of their years, In one short century, A nation great and free. The best alone her peers — So this fair pile Which here the while Beneath religion's smile Pale learning rears By exile hands from many lands. In this sweet valley on the virgin earth Her total time, from feeble birth And hopes and fears, To full-g;rown vigor, beautiful and grand — iHer children's pride — the blessing of the land — Counts scarce one-fourth a hundred years. Old England points, with noble pride. To fanes where science, art reside. As well doth Spjiin and Germany, And lovely France and Italy, And miny a laud beside ; These are the fruits of centuries, ; Of thought and toil and .power's decrees, i 1 NOTKE DAME. 261 J j Nor ever ill their glorious fame betide. ] And in our favored clime i The sister States J Of many a classic hall may boast, ; Whose open gates 1 Receive the earnest, youthful host Aglow for learning's festivals — Free classic halls, ;, As rich in fruit and promise, if less known to time. , But generous bequests \ And State endowments nurtured these. .\ As those by kings' behests ': Were formed, and by the rolling centuries, I What shall be said ] If learning's fount is fed j B}"" neither grateful dew of years, '. Spring floods of wealth, nor aught of power's channel bears, But in the desert rise. Fed by the friendly skies. The meed of prayer and toil, ,* To cheer the arid soil — The gift of faith, the pledge of love. The sign of blessings from above, • i Kind heaven's approving prize ! '' O happy task, belov'd of heaven, To thee and thy ccmipanions given, x From that auspicious morning bright, • When, clothed in robes of snow, baptismal white, "" This virgin forest burst upon thy raptured sight ! ': Then rose thy vow to heaven's Queen "" '| That she would bless the lovely scene ; And make its shades her dear letreat, ' Religion's home and learning's seat ; '■ And since that hour The special power Of Mary, Queen, *: Is felt and seen, J In every shield from harm, ] In every addi-d charm, ] That marks the pleasing progress made From forest glade to culture's clas^^ic shade; j From her sweet name, the land and lake, .; Well pleased, their lovely title take ; ^ i ^ i 262 UNIVERSITY OF Hers was the cot beside the pool, Where one small scholar came to school, And hers the present structure grand, Where hundreds crowd from all the land ; Her praise so long, the soft melodeon sung, And hers is from the mighty organ rung ; Hers is the magic rhyme Of sweetly flowing chime, And hers the monster bell's sonorous sound sublime. Where once the warrior cry Made horrid discord on the midnight sky, There songs of praise Meek voices raise. And Christian love is borne on high ; Around thee stand A Levite band Who issue f )rth to save the land ; While 'neatli thy care Blest maidens rear, In every grace, The future matrons of the race ; And from these halls Their country calls, Each rolling year. Her sons, to cheer Her heart again. And give the nation better men. And where all this appears iScarce more than one-score years 8a\v but primeval wilderness, The home of beasts and men in savage dress. What me ins were thine This gracious change divine To bring o'er nature's simple shrine, Klest founder, venerable, wise, benign, Those, only those. The good man knows ; Those, only tliose. That God bestows; His blts-ings re^t upon thy toil, His saints and angel^ guard the soil ; And th}^ blest cheer is Mary's smile, NOTRE DAME. 263 As borne on breezes free, By hill and dale, by land and sea. Her ani^el AVE floats the while. And beareth thine and her sweet praise o'er many a mile. Long here shall science dwell. Long here shall heaven's praises swell. Still honored thou ; for holy writings tell God giveth more to those who use their talents well. When little time and less of gold Have wrought so much through faith and love, What may we hope when years have rolled With added blessings from above ? What hop(! the ardent toiler cheers, What mighty hopes the future bears ! That future dawns, all lily, rose and balm, Arise, fair Mother, radiant and calm, 'Tis thine to enthnme the grand, triumphal psalm, 'Tis thine, 'tis thine, to bear the glorious palm, And call the nation to adore the Lamb, Thine, only thine, beloved Notre Dame ! And now, dear Father, kind and true, Another duty ours to do — A pleasing task for us, a joy, we hope, for you. Some blest memorial we would give. Which may remain while you shall live. To stamp, with its impressive power, Your recollections of this fleeting hour. Another time, as college legends tell, Our predecessors — they who loved you well- Concluded, after long and generous strife. That naught can ease the rugged road of life Like springy seats, with cushioned backs and sides, And that rough journey made by carriage rides. Good-natured they, but worldly-wise, we deem, And tain would hope our gift as fit may seem. 264 UNIVERSITY OF We pray thee, then, dear Father, thou wilt take lliis blessed CUP, most precious for the sake Of mystic rite ; this blest CIBORIUM, In whose dear cell our loving Lord will come ; These CRUETS, too, all emblems of pure love, When Christ descends to bless us from above. In that dread moment, when thy hand shall bear, On high this CHALICE, there, dear Father, there, Remember, O remember us in prayer ! And we, thy children, dutiful, wilfbow. And beg his gifts for thee, as we do now. And may His Mother, blest, win favor for our vow. OFFICERS Alumni Association, 1869. REV. N. H. GILLESPIE, A. M., S. S. C, President. F. C. BIGELOW, A. M., First "Vice-President. J. B. RUNNION, A. M., Second Yick-President. M. T. CORBY, A. M., Secretary. J. A. LYONS, A. M., Treasurer. REY. E. B. KILROY, A. M., Orator. JA3IES OBRIEN, A. M., Alternate. T. E. HO\YARD, A. M., Poet. A. J. STAGE, A. M., Alternate. 18 |^0mmmqmmt at |^0ht mmt [From the Chicago Tribune, of June 34th.] The charming little city of South Bend, Indiana, situ- ated eighty-four miles from Chicago, on the line of the Michigan Southern & JSTorthern Indiana Railroad, is experiencing an event, or rather passing through an epoch, in its history. This, thriving, picturesque place, now the home of twelve thousand souls, and the centre of many busy industries, marks this week the expira- tion of one-quarter of a century from the time when its leading institution was authorized to be. We state the case thus, because it was two years before that time, or twenty-seven years ago, that Father E. Sorin arrived on the southern bend in the St. Joseph river, and then and there determined to found a religious institution which should be to the Great West a focus of Catholic culture and power. The site was then a wild one. The Indian had scarcely been banished to the trans-Mississippi hunt- ing grounds by the Chicago treaty, and the wild animals still held possession of the prairie and the glen which the red man had vacated. All was a wilderness, and much of the surrounding country an undrained waste, NOTRE DAIklE. 267 little better than a bog, which promised anything but a transformation into the beauteous scenery which now meets the eye. But he was strong in the faith, and planted the standard of the Cross. That act was not the nom- inal beginning of history to South Bend, but it was the actual commencement of vitality to that region. The Brotliers wlio soon gathered there were workers as well as talkers. Their community was a busy one. They be- gan to till the soil as well as instruct the people, and, while they grew in numbers and enlarged their circle of operations, their settlement formed at once a nucleus and a stimulus for gathering activities on the other side of the river. That community, which, it is facetiously remarked, commenced with but " half a pupil," has now grown into a mighty college, with a faculty of thirty- four professors, a force of about one hundred lay broth- ers, and a total of some eight hundred residents to be fed daily from the commissary. More than this : it has proven to be the starting point whence have gone out builders of many other similar institutions. Prominent among its connections we may note that of St. Mary's, situated about a mile westward — the real estate of the two comprising a total of some 2,700 acres. St. Mary's Academy is devoted exclusively to the education of young ladies ; the University of N^otre Dame is in like manner appropriated exclusively to the culture of youths of the male sex. In connection with the commencement exercises of this, the twenty-lifth year, the alumni of the last named institution held their annual gathering on Tuesday last, a goodly number being in attendance. The twenty-fifth anniversary is appropriately marked with a Red Letter in the College Calendar, and promi- nent among its especial incidents we note the issue of a 268 TJNIYEESITY OF neat volume, entitled the " Silver Jubilee," which con- tains a concise history of the institution, a few leading facts in the biographies of its founders and present professors, several of its alumni being also honored with a place in its pages, and a sketch of the proceedings at the anniversary exercises of the present week. The work has been prepared by Professor Joseph A. Lyons, and is a credit to both compiler and publisher. It will long be treasured as a valued souvenir of the occasion which called it forth, and will be read with even increas- ing interest by succeeding generations. The exercises commenced at eight o'clock in the morning with a solemn Mass, celebrated in the chapel of the college, by the Rev. Father General, to the music of Prof. Girac's Third Mass in B flat, with instrumenta- tion by the Notre Dame Band, in addition to the organ. The service was largely attended and was very im- pressive. The second regular meeting of the alumni was had at noon in the spacious parlors of the college, Pev. Father Gillespie, the President in the chair. After the reading of minutes and transaction of some miscellaneous business, the Association proceeded to the election of ofiicers for the ensuing year, with the fol- lowing result : President — Rev. K H. Gillespie, A. M., S. S. C. First Vice- President — Prof. T. E. Howard, A. M. Second Vice-President — John Cassidy, M. D. Treasurer — Prof. J. A. Lyons, A. M. Secretarij—Yroi. M. T. Cokby, A. M. Orator — Paul Beodek, A. M. ; Alternate — J. B. Run- NION, A. M. NOTRE DAME. 269 Poet — Prof. x\. J. Stage, A. M. ; Alternate — Rev. ^I. B. Brown. The Association then elected the following as mem- bers : Prof. Max Girac, LL. D.; C. A. B. Yon AYel- ler, F. R. a., and Rev. T. O' Sullivan. The meeting then adjourned. At one o'clock, the members of the Alumni Associa- tion, with a few invited guests, sat down to dinner in the S}3acious refectory. The President — Rev. Father Gillespie — presided. Among the guests of the occasion were the Right Rev. J. H. Luers, Bishop of the Diocese of Fort Wayne ; Very Rev. Father Sorin, S. S, C., the founder of the College, and now Superior General of the Order ; Rev. Father Bojle, of Washington ; Very Rev. Father Kundig, Vicar General of Milwaukee ; Rev. Dom Paul Jaiission, of France ; Rev. M. M. Hall- inan, of Lafayette, Ind., and several other distinguished priests. The spread embraced an ample supply of sub- stantial food, cooked in the best manner, but containing nothing calculated to pamper the appetite. The dinner was full without satiety ; good without luxury ; frugal without abstemiousness. The oratorical dessert was ably managed by Prof Wm. Ivers, who officiated as " Toast Master." Letters were read from E. M. Brown, and E. M. O'Cal- laghan, of Cleveland, Ohio ; and J. B. Runnion, of Chicago, regretting unavoidable absence. After this, toasts were in order. The first was : " Our Country, — unrivalled in energy, blessed in its institutions. May it hold its place as the greatest republic the world ever saw, until all nations be blotted from the earth." 270 UNIVEKSITY OF Responded to by the Right Reverend Bishop Lners, of the Diocese of Fort Wayne. He answered the question : Is this a great country ? Yes. We have everything that can make it great ; ample and fertile territory which makes us independent of other nations, both in agricul- tural and mineral products. The nation, too, possesses energy, perseverance and go-aheadativeness which mark no other nation. It would have taken the people of the Old World centuries to build the Pacific Railroad, and take as long to lay the first brick as it does here to build a house. In the liberal arts and sciences we rival the Old World, and in the useful arts we are decidedly ahead of them. We owe our tremendous progress, in a great measure, to our liberal and free institutions, which draw out the faculties of the human mind, while the govern- ments of the Old World repress those energies. There is no reason why our progress should not continue till the end of time. " The Hierarchy and Clergy of the United States— pastors of the flock, promoters of Education, guardians of virtue, protectors of true liberty. May they continue zealous for the real interests of mankind, and be rewarded eternally for the good they have done, do, and will do." Responded to by Prof Paul Broder, of Beloit, who said that everything truly great and good is in some w^ay connected with the Christian religion, and, if there be anything attractive in the Christian religion, it is con- nected with the character of the priest. Thoughts which shine out to make the past grand and glorious have been enunciated by the priest. The life of the priest and bishop is one of self-denial from beginning to end, and it is his task to aid in relieving the sufi:erings NOTEE DAME. 271 of others, and help them in the struggle upward toward the beatitudes of the Excelsior. " The Press— Mighty in its influence for good or evil ; the grand conductor of useful knowledge or startling ideas of man. May its energy be ever found on the side of justice, honor and virtue." Eesponded to by Elias Colbert of the Chicago Tribune^ who said : " One of the humblest members of the great frater- nity for whom I am called upon to respond, I am sure that I do but express the unanimous opinion of the newspaper press in saying that the institution of ^otre Dame is an honor to the great l^orthwest, as it has been an instrument of immense power in elevating the edu- cational status of wdiat were, till very recently, the Western States. " The Press has especial reason to be proud of our schools and colleges. They form the basis on which is built up all that is valuable in the mental and moral wings of the great social edifice, and are largely identi- fied with the structure of the physical portion, which we may call the main building. And without the prepara- tions which they give, the Press would labor for naught, and soon die out for lack of suj^port. The forces which move the moral world can only act through fit instru- mentalities, and they find in the schoolroom their ful- crum, while the Press furnishes the lever by which the vis inertia of ignorance is overcome and the individual and the mass lifted out of the condition of brute exist- ence, and brought nearer to Him who is the perfection of wisdom, of justice, and of love. "I am free to confess that the functions of the Press are too often distorted from their proper use ; but that is 272 UNIVERSITY OF ?erhaps traceable to a defect in the educational liall. f the Press be sometimes applied as a lever of the second order, debasing humanity by its issues, instead of educating and blessing it, that process involves an inversion of the fulcral point to some extent. Hence it should be the first aim of our educators to so build up the rising generation on a knowledge of facts, and a love of the truth, as that this perversion shall not be possi- ble. I believe this to be the aim of the conductors of this institution, whose Alumni I have the honor of meeting to-day ; and on this point, not only myself, but the whole Press — and not alone the newspaper, but the great public — recognizes the peculiar value of that mighty growth in the last quarter of a century, which was planted twenty-seven years ago as a grain of mustard seed by the venerable Father Sorin, and whose branches are now spread so wide that it forms a type of the kingdom. '^I sincerely trust that the past success of ]N"otre Dame, and its sister institution, may prove to be but small as compared with that of the next two and a half decades, and that the Press which now seeks to do justice to its present prosperity may find its mission magnified a hundred fold in the future." " The Bar — The safeguard of our rights. May it ever be found true to its calling." Responded to by Mr. P. Dechant. " The Medical Profession — Grand is their vocation ; to give health to the sick, hope to the despairing. May they be prompt to attend every call, successful in every operation, honored among men, smiled upon by a beneficent Providence." NOTRE DAME. 273 Ttesponcled to by Dr. Jolm Cassidy, of South Bend, wlio gracefully acknowledged the compliment. He believed that the alumni of this institution had been ])reserved from the tricks of the profession, and he hoped that, as in the past, no member of its graduates will be found dealing in diluted nonsense or practicing eclectic absurdities. He trusted that the few among the Alumni of JSTotre Dame who had embraced the practice of medicine, would ever do honor to their Alma Mater by shining in their adopted sphere of labor. " The Professoriate — The fountain head of all professions ; their calling is divine." Eesponded to by Eev. M. M. Hallinan, D. D. He said that the Educator does harm to the community if he does not succeed, while with many professions a fail- ure is simply detrimental to the individual. K the professor fail to cultivate the heart of the pupil, he risks the loss of an immortal soul. He believed that the professors of this institution have always had a proper aim in view, and he trusted that their self-sacrifices will be abundantly blessed in the future growth of the college. "The University of Notre Dame— May its past typify its future." Eesponded to by James McBride. He was pleased to note a great increase in the favor with which the public regards the institution, and he wished it to be remembered that the success of Xotre Dame in the future will largely dej^end on the conduct of its alumni. " The Alumni— May their deeds continually intertwine the brow of their Alnia Mater with a bright halo." 274 UNIVERSITY OF Responded to by Prof. A. J. Stace, in a humorous speech, which evoked roars of laughter. " The Silver Jubilee — May the pleasant recollections thereof be fresh in our memories when we meet to celebrate the Golden Jubilee." Responded to by E. S. Pillars. Yery Rev. E. Sorin was called on to speak to the last subject. He responded in an account of his personal experience in the Holy City. JN^othing rejoiced him more than to meet the friends of l^otre Dame on such occasions. For whatever of good had been achieved in the past, "to God be all the glory." It is the work of the Most High, and for it His name be praised. He thanked them for the interest they had shown, and hoped that future occasions would be even more numerously attended. Father Boyle, of Washington City, was next called out, and edified the gathering for about 'Rye minutes with a sparkling discourse, referring to the pleasant character of the associations formed within those walls and the large amount of good done by such institutions. The party then rose, and proceeded up stairs, where many of them spent the afternoon in examining the different rooms of the building, or in social converse in the parlors, while some paid their respects to the sister institution of St. Mary's about a mile distant, and looked over the beautiful grounds connected with the buildings in which hundreds of young ladies are being educated by the Sisters of the same Order (of the Holy Cross), under the direction of the talented Mother Angela. We may not omit to make mention of the really ex- NOTEE DAME. '2iO cellent library, ciirated by the accomplished Rev. J. C. Carrier, whose heart is in his work, and whose work shows itself in a large and well-selected library and museum. The former, being originally nucleated by donation, contains some books of no great value, but the great majority of the works have been very judiciously chosen. We note a collection of seventeen different encyclope- dias ; a complete set of the writings of the "Fathers," in one hundred and forty-five volumes ; a full list of the classics; and a wide range of authors on Church history and the exact sciences. The museum is principally local, though it has been enriched by contributions from the continent of Europe, brought by members of the Order from the Old World. Notre Dame has a fine telescope, the gift of the Em- peror Napoleon, and a resident Professor of Astronomy — Professor T. E. Howard — but as yet has no observa- tory building. It is proposed, however, to erect a tower as soon as may be, and mount the instrument equatori- ally, when other apparatus will be procured, and the work of scientific observation be systematically prose- cuted. Professor Howard is one of the best mathema- ticians in the West. In tlie evening a large number of students and friends assembled in the Washington Hall to listen to an enter- tainment furnished by the members of the several col- lege Societies and Classes. The Hall was well filled, and the stage was well mounted, equal to that of many a more pretentious theatre. The musical portion of the entertainment was, almost without exception, most excellent. The overture to Zampa was performed by an orchestra composed exclu- sively of members of the college, under the direction of Professor Girac, and was given in a style fully worthy 276 TNIVEESITY OF of a Chicago string Band. The Cantata of the Silver Jubilee is a fine composition, rich in combination of effects, and full of counterpoint ; a little florid, perhaps, especially for execution by amateurs, but it was well given, except towards the last, when its length told severely on the vocal organs of the Juniors, making their tones uncertain. The opening recitative, by Mr. Yon Weller, was sung with much good taste and consid- erable power. The music for the two pianos was not so great a success, the two pair of players failing to keep together throughout. The movement from Haydn's Fourth Symphony was a most enjoyable performance, and its execution reflected great credit on the band and their leader. The oratorical efforts were also very creditable. The address in the Greek language was spoken fluently and clearly. The Latin address was almost as equally well delivered, and was a model composition, except that its length was an objection to it. The address by the representative of the Philodemic Society was an attempt to prove that the civilized progress of the past three or four centuries is not an effect of the Reformation. It was delivered with good oratorical effect. The address from the St. Edward's Society was rather too prosaic to be exceedingly interesting ; but it was very neatly worded in reference to the conclusion of the flrst quarter of a century in the official existence of the society, and the closing wish that the future of the college may be prosperous was so gracefully couched as to draw forth considerable applause. The dramatic portion of the programme is worthy of much commendation. The piece was well mounted, and the dresses were appropriate, while the young men who assumed the leading roles were all well up in their parts, NOTRE DAME. 277 and really would not suffer by comparison with many of our stock professionals, though these were but amateurs, and, to many of them, it was a " lirst appearance." Of course Bichelieu was a different person to what he would have been in the hands of a Kean or a Booth, but the wily Cardinal was present on the stage never- theless, and the delineation was one of great merit. The parts of Joseph^ Gaston^ de Mauprat and Baradas were also well sustained. The piece was remodelled rather extensively to fit it for being played " by male characters only." WEDNESDAY. The twenty-fifth annual commencement of the Uni- versity of Notre Dame, on account of the Silver Jubilee and its increasing excellence, was celebrated on Wednes- day, the 23d inst., with more enthusiasm than any pre- ceding one. The attendance of visitors from abroad was large, and, in addition to those noticed in the Tri- hune of Thursday, were : Hon. S. S. Hayes, Daniel O'Hara, Esq., and W. W. Kennedy, Esq., Superintend- ent of Police, Chicago ; Hon. P. B. Ewing, Lancaster, O. ; and Chas. McCabe, Esq., General Passenger Agent Great Western Railway, Canada. MORNING EXERCISES. The exhibition exercises of the morn in fj were inaugu- rated with excellent music by the Notre Dame Univer- tity Brass Band, and Orchestra, the latter under the direction of Prof. Max Girac, formerly of Chicago. 278 umvEESiTT of Mr. D. J. Wile, of Laporte, Ind., followed with an address from the St. Cecilia Society, which was a fine production, and called forth a general approval of the audience. Mr. H. B. Keeler, of the Scientific Department, made a speech, the subject of which was the Influence of Mathemathics on Civilization. This was a superior j)roduction and elicited heartj applause. The speeches of Messrs. A. B. White and J. J. Flem- ing, of the Commercial and Law Departments, were fine efforts and well received, as was also the address from the Scientific Association by Mr. J. A. Dickinson, the only fault found with any of them being their extreme length. Fine singing was interspersed between the speeches. A drama in four acts entitled the " Prodigal Law Student," written for the occasion, was rendered by the Juniors with much credit to themselves and those under whose direction it was produced. The exercises for the forenoon closed with a Junior valedictory, by J. W. Coppinger — a very creditable composition. Last year the University decided that henceforth the compositions of students should be preserved, that the public might have the inspection of them. They are required to be written on uniform paper and then turned over to the Director of Studies, who has them bound in elegant morocco and placed in the grand parlor, where visitors may inspect them at their leisure. During the day much interest was manifested in their inspection. At twelve o'clock the visitors were invited to the large dining hall of the University, where dinner was served. NOTRE DAME. 279 AFTERNOON EXERCISES. Ill the afternoon the exercises were resumed by the University Band playing an entrance march, followed by "Untiirl the Glorious Banner" (solo), sung by James Edwards with chorus by the Philharmonics, under Pi'of. M. T. Corby, A. M., wliich was most excellently rend- ered and elicited great applause. The first address from the Minims, by Master Eddy DeGroot, was the funny part of the affair, and was greeted with great merriment. The second Minims' address, by Master George H. Jenkins, though a good one, was more serious, and fol- lowed too quickly to be well appreciated. The choruses, " What Beams so Bright," (Kreutzer,) '* Praise of the Soldier," (Boieldieu,) and '' Where Would I be ? " (ZoUner,) by the Philharmonics, were most excellently rendered. The poem of*^ the Alumni, by Prof. T. E. Howard, A. M., entitled "The Silver Wedding," is the crowning effort of that eminent professor and author, and may be found at length in this book. The speech by Master Mark M. Foote, of the Junior Collegiate Department, was a master effort, which was made quite a topic of conversation and praise. The Juniors rivalled the Seniors throughout in the attention of the audience, and Master Vincent Hack- mann gave the farewell song in a style that was very affecting. The valedictory of Mr. J. A. O'Reilly was very good. In its retrospective, a gloom seemed to have settled over the audience, but its prospective joy and hope in the future made all happy again. The " Grand Cantata'*' of ^ the " Silver Jubilee" was 280 TJNIVERSITY OF again rendered by the musical societies, with an im- provement over the evening before. COIsTFERRraa OF DEGEEES. Now came the conferring of the collegiate degrees upon a few of the nmmber of hopeful expectants, and the students did not fail to give expressions of delight when great favorites received the distinguished honors, while those not favorites were passed by in silence. The Degree of Master of Arts was conferred on — Thomas A. Daly, Rochester, Kew York', John A. O'Connell, Kew York City, ISTew York, John Bleokman, Fort Wayne, Indiana, Anthony Messman, Fort Wayne, Indiana. The Degree of Bachelor of Arts was conferred on — James Cunnea, Morris, Illinois, William P. McClain, Henderson, Kentucky, James A. O'Reilly, Reading, Pennsylvania, Thomas W. Ewing-, Lancaster, Ohio. The Degree of Bachelor of Science was conferred on Hiram B. Keeler, Union, Michigan, Stacy B. Hibben, Wilmington, Ohio, James Cunnea, Morris, Illinois, Edward E. Hull, Detroit, Michigan, The Degree of Master of Accounts was conferred on — Joseph Harrison, Hardin, Illinois, John Alber, Logan sport, Indiana, NOTRE DAME. 281 Edtvaed Bahm, Batavia, Illinois, H. H. ScKN'ELKEK, NoTT Haven, Indiana, Louis Schmeider, Minster, Ohio, John Yocke, jS'apoleon, Ohio, C. E. Sage, Adamsville, Michigan, James W. Moxtgomery, Montgomery, Indiana, James F. Wilsox, Trenton, New Jersey, Berxard McGixxts, Ottawa, Illinois, James M. Grier, Geneva, Wisconsin, D. J. Die:sier, Tiffin, Ohio, Edward O'Brtax, Louisville, Kentucky, A. B. White, Hanover, Illinois. Eor this Degree there were «eventy-one candidates, but only fourteen were able to pass the required exam- ination. Preparatory Medical Certificates were awarded to — Charles J. Lux'dy, Detroit, Michigan, Henry C. Allex, Clinton, MissourL A Law course has been established this season, and will hereafter be regularly continued. AWARDING OF PEIZES. classical DEPARTME.^iT. Gold Prize for Competition, awarded to— William A'. Walker, Marysville, California. 19 282 UNIYEESITY OF First Silver Prize for Competition, awarded to — William Waldo, Independence, Missouri. Second Silver Prize for Competition, awarded to — John Zahm, Huntington, Indiana. SCIENTIFIC DEPARTMENT. Gold Prize for Competition, awarded to — : Denis A. Clarke, Columbus, Ohio. First Silver Prize for Competition, awarded to— Frank Ceapser, Lyons, Iowa. Second Silver Prize for Competition, awarded to — A. W. Arrington, Chicago, Illinois. COMMERCIAL DEPARTMENT. Gold Prize for Competition, awarded to — James F. Wilson, Trenton, [N'ew Jersey. First Silver Prize for Competition, awarded to — Edward Bahm, Batavia, Illinois. Second Silver Prize for Competition, awarded to — James W. Montgomery, Montgomery, Indiana. PREPARATORY DEPARTMENT. Gold Prize for Competition, awarded to — Jacob Eisenman, Louisville, Kentucky. NOTEE DAME. 283 First Silver Prize for Competition, awarded to — George II. Kahmann, "Washington, Missouri. Second Silver Prize for Competition, awarded to — Daniel Egan, Chicago, Illinois. The Grand Gold Medal of Excellence — For Supe- rior Excellence and Marked Proficiency in Sacred Music, awarded to — YiNCENT H. Hackmann, St. Louis, Missouri, Gold Pen — For Superior Excellence in Penmanship, awarded to — Henry P. Beakey, St. Louis, Missouri. Gold Prize — For Field Sports, awarded to — J. W. CoppiNGER and W. B. Clarke. ST. CECILIA PIIILGMATHEAIS' ASSOCIATION The Prize Gold Medals for Good Conduct and for Marked Improvement in Elocution during the scholastic year of 1868-9, were awarded to the following young gentlemen of the Junior Collegiate Department : 284 ' rmYiJEsiTY of GENEEAL HONORS. J. "W. CoppiNGER, Alton, Illinois, Mark Foote, Burlington, Iowa, YmcENT H. Hackmakn", St. Louis, Missouri, Robert Stalet, Sedalia, Missouri, J). J. Wile, Laporte, Indiana. FIRST HONORS. C. Berdel, Chicago, Illinois, J. F. McHuoH, Lafayette, Indiana, F. P. Dwyer, Chicago, Illinois, P. J. O'CoNNELL, ]^ew York City, W. B. Clarke, Chicago, Illinois, L. Wilson, Trenton, S'ew Jersey, J. Deehan, Philadelphia, Pennsylvania, €r. McCartney, Yinton, Iowa, P. Cochrane, Chicago, Illinois, Harold Hayes, Chicago, Illinois, J. Dooley, Chicago, Illinois, Henry O'ISTeil, St. Louis, Missouri, C. HuTCHiNGS, New York. SECOND HONORS. J. McGuiRE, Chicago, IlKnois, E. Bahm, Batavia, Illinois, F. Spencer, Warsaw, Missouri, M. Mahony, New York, J. Nash, Eockford, Illinois, C, Marantette, Mendpn, Michigan, A, Hemsteger, Piqua, Ohio. NOTRE DAME. AWAEDIXG OF HOXOES. 285 SENIOR DEPARTMENT, [In the following lists the names are in alphabetical order, irrespec- tive of any shades of difference in the parties.] First Honors were awarded to — Allen, Henrv C. Clarke, D. A. Cabel, Austin Crapser, F. McGlinn, James Edwards, James Eeilly, A. J. Harrison, Joseph Tighe, Denis Waldo, William Second Honors were awarded to — Arrington, A. W, Bird, W. M. Cnnnea, James Cnrran, James H. Carney, Michael Dickinson, Jas. A. Duii\', John M. Eiseman, Jacob Garritv, John E. Gambee, E. B. Grier, James M. Heerj, Thomas Ilgenfritz, C. H. Kinsella, T. A. Keeler, H. B. Montgomery, Jas. Morancy, H. P. Menard, A. H. O'Keilly, Jas. A. O'Brien, J. W. Khodes, W. P. Eogers, J. P. Eoby, J. H. Schnelker, H. H. Schnelker, Henry Stnart, Charles Schmeider, Louis Sage, C. E. Yocke, B. Yocke, John White, A. B. Wrap, Henry Wilson James F. Webb, G. M. Zahm, John JUNIOR DEPARTMENT. First Honors were awarded to — Bahm, Edward Coppinger, J. W. !N'ash, John Second Honors were awarded to — Broderick, John P.Hutchings, C. J. McCartney, Geo. Beakey, H. P. Hug, George McGuire, James 286 UNIVEESITT OF Dwyer, F. P. Hug, Hugo Dooley, James J. Hemsteger, A. Egan, Daniel J. Klein, John D. Falley, James H. Kallmann, G. H. Hackmann, Y. H. Lafferty, E. Marantette, C. O'JSTeill, C. J. Rumelj, Joseph J. Tinan, Patrick Ward, James H. Walter, Chas. W. MINIM DEPARTMENT. First Honors were awarded to — Smyth, Martin Jones, Henry Yoorhees, Henry Fear, Harry Second Honors were awarded to — Byrne, Willie Jenkins, George Whitney, C. Canavan, Willie Hopkins, S. W. Wilson, John DeGroot, Eddie Lyons, George The Gold medals are of heavy solid metal, and of the Greek cross pattern, hearing the inscription, " Optime Merenti^'' with the department and name of the recipi- ent — on the reverse, " University of Notre Dame, Sil- ver Jubilee, June 23d, 1869." When the distribution of premiums had concluded. President Eev. W. Corby introduced Eev. F. P. Boyle, of Washington, District of Columbia, as the orator of the day, who is celebrated for his oratorical attainments. NOTRE DAME, 287 OKATION BY EEY. F. P. BOYLE. The following is the substance of the excellent oration pronounced by Rev. Father Boyle, written out from notes taken in long-hand at the time ; we publish it on account of the beautiful ideas which it contains. Although it cannot compare with the oration as deliv- ered, yet we sincerely thank the gentleman who has furnished the synopsis : It is said " speech is silver and silence is gold," but when our thoughts are all golden tliej must needs find silvery expression. The exercises of yesterday and to- day have awakened emotional ideas, have stirred the depths of feeling in all hearts, and swayed our souls by their variety, beauty, and intellectual character. Hard would it be to express such sentiments, and difiicult to forbid them utterance. The tear of joy has sprung unbidden and coursed the cheeks, gladdened by these evidences of intellect profusely lavished by kind, mer- ciful Providence, and carefully nourished by the watch- ful guardians of this home of science. If a tear is the result of rapid thought meeting profound feeling in sud- den shock, then the joyous tear-drops spring to-day from their proper source. Ingenuous youth scintillating the mental force God has bestowed upon it, — votaries of science and of letters showing their proficiency in many varied evidences, — self-sacrificing tutors gathering the fruits of industrious care, — these large, cultivated assem- blages of people rejoicing in the progressive training of the young intellect, music, poetry and the freshness of youth, — religion presiding over the scene, and lending its heavenly charm, — these, all these, and more, cause thought to course our brain and descend to the wells of feeling, deep down in our softened hearts. 288 UNIVERSlTr OF But when we add to all the celebration of this Silver Jubilee of the University of the great ISTorthwest — this twenty-fifth anniversary of its inception — our joy is kindled afresh, our faces glow with new excitement, and the throbbing heart beats with another gladsome emo- tion. Some such are the masterful ideas, sentiments springing to-day from amid these many scenes of intel- lectual life, now passing before us and from these halls sacred to Religion and Science. Who shall marvel at our pleasurable feelings, who keep silence under these crowding happy thinkings ? When we turn our eyes to yon goodly pile of buildings, this beauteous landscape surrounding them, its flower-decked walks and ample play-grounds, we are tempted to ask if this be fairy work, — if the enchanter's wand has been waved above the spot and all be fruit of its potent spell. Five and twenty years ago and all here was wilderness and the prime face of nature ; here roamed the savage and the wild beast. Five and twenty years ago and the place was nameless, unsought, unknown, save as the central point whence journeyed a pious missionary to save the Indian and the settler in a large circumference of ardu- ous priestly labor. Kow behold the shrines of religion, the halls of science ; these thronging youth hurrying for the food of intellect ; this body of devoted sell-sacrificing men, solely intent upon their work of graceful training of the young, leading minds through the paths of science up to God, in whose great name they labor and towards whom they point their youthful charge, as to their true destiny and the end of their existence. 'No, it is no fairy land, ho enchantment, but " the finger of God is here." Under invocation of His great name, for His glory and by trust in Mary, Mother, this work had its XOTRE DAME, 289 beginning and progresses to its full development. It is the union of grace and intellect, religion and science, faith and reason — a home where heavenly truth descends upon man's godlike faculties to bless and comfort them in their earthly pilgrimage and to prepare them for im- mortal life. And to-day this revered Ahna Mater sends forth a group of young athletes, over whose intellectual life she has watched, labored and prayed during years of incessant toil. To them she gives credentials for the kingdom of letters and a warranty as gentlemen and scholars, tit to mingle in the professional ranks of life, to move in commercial circles, to adorn the social walks, to gladden domestic scenes, and to serve this great re- public, and to sanctify existence to its consummator in lieaven. Yes, gentlemen of the Graduating Class, to you she gives an honorable testimonial of successful studies and the possession of intellectual gifts, better than hereditary lands and the deeds that record estates and heaps of hoarded gold. You possess your intellectual powers and can wield their influence for God's greater glory, your own success, the happiness of mankind and heav- en's reward for evermore. Immortality of earthly fame is a snare, a stratagem of the enemy, the creature of man's fleeting breath and the fickleness of the multi- tude. What you hold of intellectual store will go with you into the true immortality which is beyond the grave. 1 our life is undying — God has given jovl share in His own everlastingness and these fruits of study and mental discipline are your possession, ever to be yours in time and in the eternities to which death will unbar the en- trance. But be not deceived. The parchment that attests your proficiency does not confer the sum of all 290 UNIVERSITY OF knowledge, nor does it attest your nncliallenged superi- ority over your fellows. Youth is full of hope, bright imaginings and daring, ambitious aspirations. It is apt to consider the diplo- mas as the evidences of complete science, the undisputed proof of entire mastery in the realms of thought. 'No, gentlemen, the parchment only attests your pre- paration, your will, your fitness — ^the battle-field opens before you. In the arena of thought you must bear also the standard of your Ahna Mater and never permit her fair fame to be disgraced. This is indeed Commence- ment Day for you. In your hand you bear the key to the store-house of knowledge : open it and enter cour- ageously. But, gentlemen, be ever mindful that true science confesses to itself its own insufiiciency. There are truths higher than what is called human science, and even in this there have been, and now are, many stronger masters than yourselves. The great Sir Isaac !N"ewton, in the evening of his life, declared that he was standing on the shore of the great ocean of truth which lay all undiscovered before him. So shall you observe with what humility the truly scientific demean them- selves. Dogmatism, the claim of personal infallibility, intolerance of others opinion, pride of intellect, are sure indications of the charlatan, the sciolist, the pretender. The Master Divine said of old, " Unless you become as little children, you cannot enter the kingdom of heaven" — nor yet, gentlemen, " unless you feel as children of truth, are you fit for the kingdom of science." I have nearly accomplished my alloted task, and it only re- mains for me to say a word of caution, based on an ex- perience, starting from an occasion like the present for myself, and running its course for three and twenty years. NOTRE DAME. 291 The duties that shall devolve upon you are not strictly of choice, still less of chance or imperious fate. God has allotted you work by an eternal decree, and the rest of your days must be sacred to its performance. Fix your minds on this central truth — God is Alpha and Omega. Whatever path you may pursue — whether the courts of law and the career of jurisprudence invite you — or the honorable science that cares for the suffer- ing and contends against death — or whether you be called as were Saul or Barnabas — or pass your years in the varied walks of commercial activity, ever remem- ber the goal of your efforts, the term of your labors and the appointed reward, the God of truth to whom you dedicate to-day your young lives, for whose glor}^ you lift your hands in hope and upon whom you fix your gaze, never, I trust, to lose His saving light, at this moment pouring its brilliant rays upon your souls. Believe me, gentlemen, there is no truth other than God's truth, no science, no philosophy, save that upon which he has placed the seal of His approval, the sanc- tion of His Church. Deeply interested in your welfare, anxious for your success, may the coincidence of the Silver Jubilee and your graduation be ominous of your future. Silvery success attend you ; may you be blessed of God and loved of men. CLOSING EXERCISES OF St. Mary's Academy held its annual exercises on the 24:th, the day following that of j^otre Dame, and for which occasion many of the visitors of the day before remained to witness the exercises of the latter institu- tion. The young ladies, who have been under the guidance of the talented and faithful Mother Superior, M. Angela, who marks each year with substantial pro- gress, made a very fine appearance. For the scholastic year just closed. Mother Angela notes in the full tide of success the establishment of a School of Design, which was very generally remarked by visitors as being an honor to the West, The instruction is given by a lady teacher who is not a member of the order which governs the school, and who is paid an exceed- ingly liberal salary. The first instruction is from blocks of cubes, squares, angles and rounds, placed in every NOtEE DAilE. 293 conceivable form and shape, that the student may culti- vate correct ideas of perspective ; then follows drawing from plaster casts of hands, feet, faces, busts, etc. When proficient in these, comes drawing from nature, of which the magnificent and picturesque scenery of St. Mary's, with its artistically cultivated scenery as an ad- junct, affords ample scope ; and in one of the parlors were displayed many pieces of rare excellence ; but want of space forbids a more extended notice. Another of the superior branches is that of vocal and instrumental music, the first being under the direction of Miss Smythe, upon whom was bestowed the best mu- sical education afforded in England, Switzerland and Germany, receiving the finishing touches under Signor Blanchard and Senora Corrilli. In the musical depart- ment were 185 pupils, many of wdiom gave evidence of their superior training. Another branch upon which the institution prides itself is that art known to but few ladies of the present day — the art of domestic economy — which they denom- inate the crowning department of the institution. Fi,ve of the graduates received premiums for excellence in this department, consisting of beautiful pointed cases of pins and needles brought from the Old World by Eev. E. Sorin, Superior General of the Order. In each of the cases was written the name of the recipient, together with appropriate mottoes from the Proverbs : " She has made for herself clothing of tapestry ; fine linen and Eurple are her clothing." " Give her the fruits of her ands, and let her works praise her in the gates." At eleven o'clock A. M. the exercises opened with a grand entrance march from Tannhauser, executed on four pianos and two harps, by ten fair young ladies, in beautiful style. During this performance, the school 294 UNIVEESITY OF entered upon the stage from each side, headed by the Minims. They came forward by twos, courtesying, and then retiring to their seats. There was the courtesy haughty, proud, sedate, grave, gay, coquettish, frank, joyous, and the courtesy easy and gracefuL To the beholder it was a fine study. As soon as they were seated, the audience was served with a treat not in the programme. Miss Smythe came forward by special request previously made, and sang the " Mghtingale's Trill," which was received with rapturous applause. It has come to be an established custom for Bishop J. H. Luers, of Fort Wayne, to be present, both here and at Kotre Dame, and distribute the varied premiums, which distribution next took place, to the Junior and Preparatory .Departments ; these consisted of books. The vocal classes of twenty-eight members next gave a chorus — from " La Sonambula," (Bellini,) under the direction of Miss Smythe. It was a grand success. The salutatory of Miss E. Crouch, of Jackson, Mich., was a very creditable composition, likening the mem- bers of the Graduating Class to the several virtues, Modesty, Humility, Hope, Patience, Candor and Benev- olence. The members of the Class to whom these virtues were assimilated are. Miss E. Crouch, Miss M. Twoomey, Goshen, Ind., Misses Laura and Lizzie Tong, Columbus, O. ; Miss Kate Cunnea, Morris, 111. ; and Miss Kate Livingston, Kankakee, 111. Miss A. Mulhall sang an aria from " L'Africaine," (Meyerbeer.) She has a fair voice with fine cultivation. Miss M. Twoomey then gave an essay on the Con- templation of E"ature, which was well received. This young lady is but fifteen years old, but is one of the brightest of the Graduating Class. NOTRE DAME. 295 A vocal duet from Mendelssohn, by the accomplished Carrie Davenport, of Elkhart, and Kate Medill, of Chicago, followed. This was rendered with exceeding artistic grace, and was highly complimentary to the mu- sical talents of the young ladies. Miss Davenport has been for several years noted as a most gifted musical artist, and acquitted herself on this occasion in a manner satisfactory to all. The Misses Tong read an alternate essay on Light and Shadow, which was as beautiful as these accom- plished twins, between whom, in feature, form, action or voice, none but the most intimate can distinguish. Miss Mulhall sang a solo, " Farewell, My Only Love," in fine tone. Miss Cunnea's essay on " Logic," was another of the excellent compositions. Miss Ella Ewing, of Ohio, read a fine address to the Rev. Father Sorin, Superior General of the Order, in honor of the Silver Jubilee. " The Two Sisters," an operetta, by Saroni, was then given by the following young ladies : Mable Stanley, Queen elect Miss C. Davenport Florence, her Sister Miss J. Hynds Marina Miss M. Edwards Corina Miss C. Foote Anna Miss K. Medill Preciosa, afterwards Florence Maritana Miss L. Chamberlain Aragona Miss A. Walker Maud Miss M. Walton Leona Miss R. Rettig Esther Mies E. Ewing Miss Jenny Hynds was marked, in addition to the others before noticed, as having superior musical talent. Cavatina, " The Vision," (Yerdi,) by Miss Daven- port, was finely rendered. " The Juniors' Choice," a play by the little ones, was an affaii- which created great enthusiasm. ^96 TTNTVJJESITY OF Overture to Figaro, (Mozart,) Pianos — Misses C. Foote, Laura Tong, A. Mulhall, C. Davenport, K. Liv- ingston, K. Young, M. Sherland, Lizzie Tong and J. Hynds, was rendered with perfect time. The conferring of the graduating honors, consisting of large gold medals of the same pattern but larger than those of J^otre Dame, and crowns of honors, were conferred upon Misses K. Livingston, L. and L. Tong, E. Crouch, K. Cunnea and M. Twoomey. Crowns of honor, Senior Department, for amiable, polite and correct deportment, were awarded to Misses A. Mulhall, A. Ewing, M. Alexander, J. Dobson and E. Kirwin. Second and third honors, twenty-two each. Crowns of honor, Junior Department, to M. Letouf- neau, J. Wilder and B. Meyers. Second honors to thirteen. Third honors to two. Also, honors to several Minims. First premiums in domestic economy to Misses K. Livingston, L. and L. Tong, E. Crouch and K. Cunnea. Premiums for plain sewing were awarded to nineteen young ladies. Miss K. Livingston read the valedictory, bidding an affectionate farewell to all. Rev. F. P. Boyle was introduced by Eev. W. Corby, and made an excellent oration. The exercises then closed with the March, " Chant du Bivouac," (Kuchen,) Misses J. Arrington, M. Kirwin, L. English, IST. Thompson, E. Ruger, K. Rettig, T. Yan Horn ; Harps, Misses M. Sherland, C. Davenport, with accomplished grace. The guests were then invited to an elegant repast, Mter which adieus were exchanged, and then a rapid teve to the railroad depot at South Bend. Hrji's Mai^mg, CHARTERED 1855. St. Mary's Academy, under the directions of tlie Sis- ters of the Holy Cross, is situated on the St. Joseph River, eighty miles east of Chicago, via Michigan South- ern Railroad, and two miles from the flourishing town of South Bend. The site of St. Mary's is one to excite the admiration of every beholder. It would appear that nature had anticipated the use to which the grounds were to be ap- plied, and had disposed her advantages to meet the requirements of such an establishment. Magnificent forest trees rising from the banks of one of the most beautiful rivers in the Mississippi Valley still stand in native grandeur ; the music of bright waters and health- ful breezes inspire activity and energy, while the quiet seclusion invites to reflection and study. 20 298 UNIYEKSITY OF The building, of brick with stone dressing, spacious and commodious, is one of the best constructed in the country for educational purposes. Every portion of the Institution is heated by steam, and hot and cold baths are connected with the sleeping apartments. The Scholastic Year is divided into two sessions of ^ye months each. The first session commencing the first Monday of September, and ending the last day of Jan- uary. At Christmas the regular classes are not inter- rupted, except the day before and the day after. The second session commencing the first day of February, and ending the last Thursday of June. At the close of the first session, an examination is held in the presence of the Superior, teachers and invited guests ; the principal and public examination takes place during the fourteen days preceeding the last Thursday of June, on which day the Annual Commencement takes place. Pupils are received at all times during the year, and their session commences with the date of their entrance. The pupils are divided into the Senior, Junior and Minim Departments, each having separate class and recreation rooms, study and dining halls, play grounds and sleeping apartments. The Table of Honor, Weekly Notes, Monthly Tickets, Semi- Annual Examinations and Bulletins, Annual Dis- tribution of Premiums, Gold Crosses and Crowns, are among the many means made use of to excite the love of study in the minds of pupils and to reward the diligent. NOTRE DA^IE. 299 The Course of Study is very tliorongh and extensive, embracino: all the branches of a solid and ornamental education. Seven years are required to complete a full course, commencing in the Primary Department, and four years commencing in the Senior Department of French and English. Additional time will be necessary where pupils intend to graduate in a classical course. Graduating Medals are awarded to those only who take the full English and French, or Classical Course. All students -entering the Institution will be expected to take tlie Kegular Course, unless allowed, for satisfac- tory reasons, to pursue special studies. But every pos- sible tacility will be afforded to those students who find it desirable to devote their whole attention to sino-le branches, or to a limited number selected with some special reference, either in continuing favorite studies or to fit themselves for future occupation. The Scientific Departments receive careful attention ; the Institution ]30ssesses an excellent set of Cliemical and Philosophical Apparatus, choice and extensive Her- bariums of Foreign and Native Plants, and a fine Library. Each Department of the Institution, {i. e.) Senior, In- termediate and Junior, has its own regular organized Peading Society, (presided over by their respective teach- ers,) in which two hours every Wednesday afternoon are devoted to reading aloud carefully selected works from approved authors ; the pupils at this time are taught to exercise judicious criticisms, either orally or in writing. 300 TNIVERSITT OF Great attention is given to Rlietorical Exercises, Let- ter-Writing and other forms of Composition. The abil- ity to read aloud, not only intelligibly and with correct- ness, but with that elegance and expressive power which brings out the full force and beauty of the subject is a rare and precious accomplishment, and it receives the most particular attention in every department. Compo- sitions are required from all the pupils every week. A certain number of the best are selected to be read aloud at the Weekly Academic Re-union. In addition to Class Instruction in Letter- Writing, every pupil is required to write home once a week. Book-Keeping. — The general principles of Book-Keep- ing and a 'simple system of keeping personal accounts are taught to all the pupils in the Senior Department. This course is extended very thoroughly for any who may desire it. Bulletins of the pupil's progress sent monthly to parents. When a student has once commenced any particular branch she cannot lay it aside without the consent of the Prefect of Studies and the Superior. The Modern Languages are taught by native teach- ers, and are familiarly spoken by the inmates of the Institution. The pupils are required to devote certain hours of recreation to conversing with their teachers in those tongues. The French forms a portion of the reg- ular course — German, Italian and Spanish optional. NOTRE DxVME. 301 Ornamental Department. — While the solid studies are regarded as the most important, much attention is given to those lighter and more graceful accomplish- ments which throw a charm over domestic life, and con- tribute so essentially to elevate the tone of society at large. Music, in its various branches, is assidiuously culti- vated. The rudiments of vocal music are taught to all the pupils in the Institution, and the practice of social singing, both sacred and secular, is encouraged to the utmost extent. The Scientific, Yocal and Instrumental Departments are taught by accomplished and experi- enced teachers. One wing of the Academy is divided into a large hall for sino^ino' and fortv music rooms, each one containino^ a harp or piano. Independent of the private weekly lessons, instructions in Harmony and the theory of in- strumental music is also given in regularly graded classes, on the European Conservatorium plan. Partic- ular attention is given to pupils who are preparing themselves to become organists. While every facility is offered to obtain a brilliant and scientific musical educa- tion, yet the students are not allowed to sacrifice higher interests to proficiency in branches purely ornamental. Those wdio, from want of natural talent, make but little progress, are dissuaded from wasting time and means which might used to better advantage. School of Design. — We are happy to inform our 302 TNIVERSITY OF patrons that we have, at length been able to realize a long cherished desire of opening a School of Design, where choice models in busts, chromos and oil paintings in the different schools have been collected, and where full courses will be given by efficient teachers in all the various departments of Drawing and Painting. EELiaious Instruction. — Pupils of all denominations are admitted into the Institution ; and, while the utmost care is taken in the religious instruction of the children of Catholic parents, there is no interference with the children of those of diffierent belief. For the sake of good discipline, all are required to be present at the public religious exercises. Health. — The remarkable beauty of St. Mary's loca- tion, the salubrity of the climate, and the extensive grounds, intersperced with groves and walks, arbors and fountains for the use and recreation of the pupils, con- tribute greatly to the uniform excellent health of the inmates of the Institution. Every incentive in the shape of swings, calesthenics,* croquet, tlie graces, archery, and other games, are offered to induce sufficient exercise in the open air to preserve and promote a vigorous physique. Of the five large halls devoted to recreation, three are assigned to active in-door amusement when the weather will not permit out-door exercise. * Every student is requested to provide herself with a hght and easy-fitting dress, to be worn during these games. NOTRE DAME. 303 Great attention is paid to the sanitary regulations of the Academy — i. e.^ in the choice and preparation of the food, the warming and thorough ventilation of the rooms ; the hours for rising and retiring — for meals, study and recreation ; the rules affecting personal regi- men, etc. The Prefect of Health is charged with the special supervision of the health of the students, and, in case of sickness, she immediately informs parent or guardian. While so much attention is paid to the pupil's health, their general deportment is equally the source of unre- mitting care. Knowing that the charm of what is prop- erly termed good breeding is the aggregate of habits acquired in youth, the teachers fail not, on all occasions, to point out and correct their faults against polite, lady- like deportment. In conversation they are carefully taught to avoid all that is rude, coarse, insipid or trivial — they are instructed how to think for themselves and to express their ideas modestly, clearly and frankly, and taught to use their recourses of knowledge, reason and wit with good sense and good taste. Frequent public instructions are given in politeness and etiquette. It is often a subject of reproach, as well as regret, that young ladies, after passing many years at school — well instructed in the accomplishments and sciences of the age — are woefully deficient in those household duties which undoubtedly form the most important part of 304: UNIVERSITY OF woman's peculiar province. The young lady at school is not placed in the proper position for successful prac- tice of those duties, yet much can be done toward pre- paring her for them, and guarding her against the dan- ger of forming tastes and habits tending to unfit her for her alloted sphere — ^rendering its duties irksome and repulsive. For this purpose, oral instruction in the art of domestic economy in all its branches, practical illus- tration in the kitchen, bakery and dairy of the Institu- tion, with reference, for example, to the selection of meats, vegetables, and other articles of food and their preparation for the table, will be given in the Senior Department, in order to impress, theoretically at least, the importance of these duties on the minds of the pupil. Regular hours for sewing are allotted to all students for the necessary repairs of their wardrobe and ornamen- tal or plain sewing. The sewing-circles are placed under the direction of competent teachers, who give fall and careful instructions to the pupils intrusted to them. GRADUATES IN COURSE. CXaJ^SS OF 1869. The Year of the Silver Jubilee. James Cunnea. James Cimnea, of Morris, 111., entered the University of Notre Dame in 186 J:, and after a careful course of classical and scientific studies, received at the Annual Commencement in June, 1869, the degree of A. B. in the collegiate course, and of B. S. in the scienific course. Should Mr. Cunnea make a proper use of his talents, and there is every reason to believe he will, he will undoubtedly be an honor to his Alma Mater. 306 university of Thomas W. Ewing. Thomas W. Ewing, of Lancaster, O., grandson of the veteran senator from Ohio, the Hon. Thomas Ewing, entered the University of I^otre Dame in 1860, being at the time ten years of age. After passing through the three departments of the University, the Minim, Junior and Senior, he came to the terminus of his collegiate studies in June, 1869, receiving at the Annual Com- mencement of that year the collegiate degree of A. B. Mr. Ewing is a young man of a solid and well balanced mind, and will unquestionably win bright laurels in whatever avocation he may engage. James A. O'Reilly. James A. O'Reilly, of Reading, Penn., entered the University of ]N"otre Dame in 1865, well advanced in the various branches of a common school education, and somewhat proficient in Greek and Latin. After four years of diligent application, he was admitted to the honors of graduation in June, 1869. Mr. O'Reilly is yet quite young, but has already given evidences of considerable talent, and promise of future usefulness. NOTKE DAME. 307 .William f^. JVLc^lain. William P. McClain, of Henderson, Ky., entered the rniversity of Notre Dame in 1867, already advanced in many branches of a collegiate edncation. By two years of earnest application he completed the remaining studies and received the degree of A. B. at the Annual Commencement in 1869. Mr. McClain's mind is of the brilliant type rather than the deep or grasping, and by a proper degree of self-control he may do a great deal of good. H. B. Keeler. Hiram B. Keeler, of Union, Mich., entered the Uni- versity of Notre Dame in 1861, having previously taught in the public schools, and consequently with a mind better informed and more fully developed than the minds of students generally are on their entrance into college. After three years of close application to the higher branches of science, (his studies were interrupted for one year,) Mr. Keeler graduated with distinction, as a Bachelor of Science, in June, 1869. Mr. Keeler's mind is of the deep and grasping class, with enough of the brilliant to render him a good and pleasing writer. Should he devote himself to the cultivation of science he will most probably become eminent. 308 UNIVERSITY OF S. B. MlBBEN. Stacy B. Hibben, of Wilmington, Ohio, entered the University of E"otre Dame in 1865, prepared by a supe- rior common school education to enter upon the higher collegiate studies. His perseverance, supported by superior talent, made him conspicious as a student, and early in 1868-9 he had completed the prescribed course, when circumstances called him home after having passed a satisfactory examination for degrees. Returning at the Annual Commencement in 1869, he received the degree of Bachelor of Science, to which he will cer- tainly do honor by a good use of the fine abilities with which nature has endowed him. E. E. Hull. Edward E. Hull, of Detroit, Mich., entered the Uni- versity of Notre Dame in 1865, and like his friend, Mr. Hibben, was considerably advanced in studies. By dil- igent application he completed the scientific course sat- isfactorily, and at the Annual Commencement in 1869 received the degree of Bachelor of Science. Mr. Hull possesses a mind capable of accomplishing a great deal, and a natural disposition which cannot fail to win him many warm friends. NOTRE DAME. 309 ELECTED MEMBERS. Eev. Timothy O' Sullivan was born at Clonakilty, County Cork, Ireland, in December, 1838. In 1852, Father O' Sullivan entered the regular collegiate depart- ment of the University of ISTotre Dame, and pursued his studies with brilliant success for three years. In 1855, a vacancy occurring in the College of St. Mary's of the Lake, Chicago, 111., Father O' Sullivan repaired thither and began his career as a teacher, in the mean time attending the classes at Bell & Sloan's Commer- cial College, in that city, where he took out his diploma as Master of Accounts. In 1858, Father O'Sullivan returned to l^otre Dame and took charge of the Commercial Department in that University. His energetic and clear explanations of the important science of book-keeping, soon won him universal esteem among his numerous pupils, while he still preserved the reputation which he had hitherto en- joyed, for sociability and cheerfulness. He continued this occupation till the close of 1860, when he took his departure for the celebrated University of Louvain, Belgium, with a view to prepare himself for the sacred TJNIYERSITT OP ministry, by a thorough course of theology. After five years of assiduous application he was graduated a Bach- elor of Theology, and was ordained priest in the same year. After his ordination. Father O' Sullivan returned to the United States and entered upon his labors as a mis- sionary, and though his health has been considerably impaired by his long and severe application to study, he still manifests that energy of character and earnest zeal for the good of his fellow men, which ever distin- guished him, and which renders him now capable of deeds Avhich his physical strength would seem altogether incapable of accomplishing. Although Father O' Sullivan did not complete his col- legiate studies at ]^otre Dame, yet the members of the Associated Alumni, many of whom were his fellow- students at this place, appreciating his talents and ac- quirements, and wishing to give him a proof of their esteem, unanimously elected him a member at the regu- lar meeting in June, 1869. Father O' Sullivan is at present pastor at Delphi, Ind., where he enjoys the confidence and love of all who know him. Prof Max E. Girac is a native of France, and a grad- uate of the celebrated University of France, having NOTRE DAME. 311 received both the regular collegiate degrees and also the degree of LL. D. He is better known to the musical public, however, as a thorough musician and composer, than to the literary world. Prof. Girac has been con- nected with the University of Notre Dame for many years, with some brief interruptions, and enjoys the sincere esteem and respect of all with whom he has had to deal, but especially of the Associated Alumni, who testified their appreciation of his superior merits, both as a scholar ^nd gentleman, by unanimously electing him a member at the regular meeting in June, 1869. Those who had the pleasure of listening to the beautilul music of the Cantata composed by Prof. Girac for the late celebration of the Silver Jubilee, w^ll be forced to think with respect of the able genius which linked toorether such beautiful and varied harmonies. PEia^e ©e A« i. yUQ)^. WELLiR, p. B« A. Prof. Carl A. B. Yon Weller is a native of England, and from his early youth gave evidences of true artistic talent. While yet a young man he had made such progress in the delightful art of painting, that he was admitted as a member of the Koyal Academy of Arts, in his native land. Attracted, however, by the tales he had heard of America's delightful scenery, he left his native place and came to this country, making his first 312 TJNIVEESITT OF NOTEE DAME. sojourn in Canada. He afterwards resided in southern Ohio, for a time, and finally, two years ago, came to Notre Dame, where he has since filled, with ability and credit, the position of Professor of Design and Painting, in which he needs no other recommendation than the rapid improvement and artistic development of his many pupils. Prof. Yon Weller's ability as an artist, and his engaging qualities as a young man of integrity and an obliging disposition, did not escape the notice of the members of the Alumni Association, who manifested their appreciation of his merits by electing him a mem- ber at the regular meeting in June, 1869. Note. — The graduates and elected members of the present year have not yet received full justice, either in the sketches given of them or in the position which these sketches, or rather notices, occupy in the book. In a subsequent edition we will give fuller sketches and place them in their proper rank in the book. NOTRE DAME. 313 We insert in this edition, the following valedictory, by James A. O'Reilly, A. B., of Reading, Pa. It was un- avoidably crowded out of the first. — Compiler. Rev. Fathers, Professors, Fellow Students and Friends : — Men seldom appreciate, at their true value, even the greatest blessings, till they have lost or are about to lose them, nor do they always understand the real character and extent of their own feelings, of love and attachment, towards those who have been their com- panions or directors in some important undertaking, till circumstances oblige them to sever the bonds which had previously united them. If this is true of men in general, who have been taught, by long and often painful experience, to suppress the natural promptings of their hearts, the better to secure their own interests, it is, certainly, more strikingly true of the student, who has not yet learned to exercise such painful control over his feelings, in whom nature yet holds untrammeled sway. To-day, the students of Notre Dame are to be subjecte(i 21 314: irmVEESITT OF to that severest ordeal of friendship — separation. To- day, the bonds of affection and veneration, which have so long united us to this our " Alma Mater," are to be severed ; the ties of brotherly love, which bound us to- gether as members of one family, are to be sundered, though they can never be dissolved. Shall we not then, fellow students, review together the many associations of interest and endearment, which bind us to this sacred spot, this asylum of virtue and learning, where our youth has been guarded from the contamination so prevalent in the outer world, and our awakening minds trained in those principles of morality and science, which fit us alike for the duties of the upright citizen and intelligent christian ? Yes, let us take a retrospective glance at the happy years of our college life at IS^otre Dame. And, first, what shall we say of him, whose master mind, guided and sustained by the Great Author of all good, planned this noble institution of learning ; whose zeal for the welfare and improvement of his fellow man, sup- ported him amid difficulties the most trying, till his be- nevolent enterprise finally triumphed, as did that won- derful institution Christianity itself, which he so faithfully represented in this new world ; whose venerable pres- ence to-day, recalls the many lessons of virtue we have heard from his lips and learned from his noble example. Shall we attempt to speak his praise ! No, in silence let us look around us and see his work ! let our hearts speak, and let our future lives prove our appreciation of a i NOTRE DAME. 315 his benefits to iis. Let the name of Father Sorin be felt rather than heard, till it can be spoken with due praise, without fear of offending so true a follower of the crucified. With w^hat feelings of gratitude and respect, do we not recall to-day, the many kindnesses which we have received, also, from Yery Rev. Father Provincial, who has ever watched with a father's solicitude over our religious instructions, and guarded us by his kind and timely advice, from many of the frailties to which our youth is exposed. And will the students of Notre Dame ever forget our kind and generous hearted president. Father Corby ? Is it not a pleasure to-day to recall those many evidences of his sincere interest in us ; even when duty rendered it necessary to reprove, could we not see that it pained him even more than it did us who were reproved, and did not this consciousness make us feel how ungrateful we would be, were we to act in such a manner as to give pain to so kind a friend ? Yes, Father Corby has ever been our kind friend, and his memory shall be ever pre- served among the brightest recollections of our college life. Nor can we soon forget our esteemed Yice-Presi- dent. Father Lemon nier, whose vigilant supervision of our studies has been a source of profit to us, and whose cheerful co-operation in all that concerned our interest or our pleasures, has given him a just claim upon our grati- tude and affection. And, fellow students, where, in after life^ shall we find 316 UNIVERSITY OF more warm and disinterested friends than our kind in- structors at Notre Dame ; when shall we meet with friends who will sit by our side to console and counsel us in our sorrows, or aid us in our difficulties, as the noble hearted professors of this University have often done. And when shall we in our future relations with men, find more indulgent friends and milder directors than our good prefects, who by their very strictness, which may have sometimes appeared to us severity, advanced our real interests, and established a claim to our ever- lasting gratitude. Years must pass away before we can fully appreciate the value of the kindness and friendship which we have met on all sides at this our " Alma Mater," and the re- membrance of those friends to whom we must to-day say farewell, will in future years draw more firmly the bonds of afi*ection and reverence which now bind us to this noble institution. And now fellow students, shall we not take a parting glance at our relations to one another as students, and say a parting word of the pleasant associations which to- day must be interrupted never more to be enjoyed by many of us except in memory. When hereafter amid the cares and trials of life, we hear of a youthful band of noble hearted young men, who strive to improve their minds and literary tastes by their combined efforts, shall we not look back to IS'otre Dame and naturally think of the great and talented St. NOTRE DAME. 317 Aloysuis Philodemics, or when we hear of a similar as- sociation of energetic young men shall we not think of the brilliant St. Edwards, will not the strains of martial music ever recall the noble Cornet Band of this Univer- sity ? When after the agitations of the day, we attend some pleasing concert, or visit some inspiring opera, shall we not be led back in spirit to Washington Hall, and hear again the familiar strains of the j^otre Dame Orchestra, or listen with renewed rapture to the beautiful singing of the accomplished Philharmonics, or the solemn, sacred chants of the able choir ? Yes, and when in after years, we visit some school and witness the display of its young inmates shall we not naturally compare their performan- ces with those of our younger brothers, the happy, cheer- ful St. Cecilians. Will not the sight of some athletic game as we hurry on in the discharge of some important duty, recall the varied sports which we once enjoyed on the spacious play ground at N^otre Dame, and will not our step become more elastic as we recall those joyous days ! Shall we not often think of the delightful walks which we enjoyed together, and long for the pleasant shade by the shores of St. Joseph's Lake, where we often whiled away the weary hours of a summer day. These, fellow students, friends of our college days, are- some of the associations of interest and pleasure whichj make Notre Dame a sacred spot to us, these are the as- sociations that cheer us amid the cares and struggles that await us. But why dwell upon these scenes to-day ? 318 UNIVERSITY OF Ask the STin-browned sailor, who is about to depart on a long and perilous voyage, why he lingers on the threshold of his home to take a parting look at the fami- liar objects which are connected with the peaceful en- joyments of domestic happiness ? He is about to begin a dangerous voyage — suffering may overtake him — he will need consolation, and he drinks in, as it were, the surroundings of his happy moments to cheer or console him in the day of sadness. So we, fellow students, begin to-day a long and perilous voyage; to-day we launch our barque on the broad ocean of life, to begin our career of usefulness, in whatever sphere Divine Providence has apportioned to us. This is indeed our commencement day. Shall we not then linger awhile on the threshold of this home of our youth, to take a parting glance at the cheerful scenes and associations of our happy sojourn here. But the sailor's heart is brave, and though a tear courses down his weather-beaten cheek, as he bids adieu to his loving wife and children, yet he knows the parting word must be said and he summons up his courage for the task, says farewell, and departs. So we, fellow students, feel the tear starting to our eye as we look around upon those familiar scenes and friendly faces, and feel that we too must say farewell. But we have been well prepared for the journey of life by our " Alma Mater." Let us ever remain true to the principles of virtue and NOTRE DAME. 319 j propriety wliicli we have here imbibed. Let us be brave j in our entrance upon the duties of life. Let us at last, i since we must, say : " Farewell ! " ] Farewell, Father General, Benefactor of American "j youth ; Farewell, Father Provincial, Director of our re- j ligious instructions. Farewell, Father Superior, kind j and indulgent friend of the students of Notre Dame. ■ Farewell Rev. Yice-President, watchful guardian of our : true interests. Farewell, generous-hearted Professors, *] wlio have sacrificed yourselves for our good. Farewell, 1 kind Prefects, and more especially you, Pev. Prefect of i Discipline, who have always been indulgent towards us. ^ Farewell, noble, great, illustrious Notre Dame, within i whose walls millions shall yet drink of the purest waters j of virtue and science. Fellow student, friends, farew^ell ! ] ip^nii^. Delivered before the Alumni Association of the Univer- sity, June 22d, 1870. GASTON DE FOIX. BY PROF. A. J. STAGE, A. M. I sat at the gate of a mighty lord — Lord of a fair and broad domain ; Keen the edge of his well-known sword, On the battle-fields of France and Spain. Yet loved he not the battle plain — No turbulent, quarrelsome knight was he, But true as brave and gentle as free, He ruled his vassals with royal might, And many a king Less power could bring Than Count de Foix (a) to defend his right. A prudent and pious Christian knight, He heard devotion's sacred call ; Choral office and holy rite, All were sung in his castle hall ; NOTRE DAME. 321 j Every day the Virgin's psalms, I Chanted in due religious state ; • Every day a liberal alms, j To any that came to the castle gate. j None left his doors— no honored guest j Without a present of the best, .] When he went down to his dining hall, j Twelve pages bore twelve tapers tall, ^. And the costly viands were lavish spread J For a large and noble company, Sitting by rank from the table's head, — • Knights and squires of high degree, < And any that need or pleasure led To partake of his hospitality. While wandering troubadours would sing Roundelay and virelay, ' And make the generous echoes ring I With ballads of love and chivalry. ^ When he went forth to hunt the bear, . In the rugged forests of Savaterre, Of sixteen hundred (b) hounds, the choice Waited his pleasure and followed his voice; j And the wild woods were gay j With the festive array, ; And the sounding horns made hearts rejoice. I gazed on his splendor — his royal train — j (For the Count de Foix like a king did reign.) ^ And said I, " He hath all that man can desire." " Ah, no ! ah, no ! " — quoth the aged squire. ' " No ? then, good sir, pray tell me why. ' j " The tale is long " — was the sad reply. \ But w^e sat in the shade of the castle wall, i And the old retainer told me all. j 322 UNIVERSITY OF THE TALE. Our Count, as you have rightly said, A royal force to field can bring ; j Then marvel not that he should wed ] The sister of a crowned king. j The marvel greater is by far, ^ That such a monarch as Navarre — (c) ^ So faithless a king should be brother-in-law, To the true and noble Oount de Foix. ; In dungeon deep, the Lord d'Albreth i Was held by the Count for his ransom's debt. i The King of Navarre would his surety be, ; But the Count, well knowing him, would not agree. The Countess spoke with bitter heart : " Think you, de Foix, my brother's coffers Are run so low that he cannot part I With the sum to make good, at need, his offers ? Or do you think his honor ranks So low, that he would prove untrue For a trifle of fifty thousand francs? But even if so, iny dowry is due — An equal sum — to him from you." i " 'Tis true, my lady, but if he | The fine would stop on such a claim, The Lord d'Albreth should never see The freedom that befits his name. ' Yet will I now for Gaston's sake — | For Gaston, our beloved son — His uncle's surety freely take. Hoping that justice may be done." The Lord d'Albreth from prison free, ■ His ransom duly sent the king ; But never — false Navarre — did he ' The gold to its rightful owner bring. NOTRE DAME. 323 " My lady," said the Count, " you see What faith your brother keeps with me. 'Tis as I said ; but you must go And tell Navarre he is my foe Until that ransom be restored." The lady, trembling, left her lord, For well she knew the dire offence, And sought Navarre, her brother's throne ; " Dear brother, I dare not go hence Until that ransom is mine own." " That ransom, sister, is thine own — Thy dowry from thy husband due, I hold it in trust for thee alone. But ne'er shall he that ransom view." " Ah ! brother, think ! A deadly strife For gold to cause 'twixt man and wife, Unless that ransom you restore, I dare not see my husband more." " Stay here and welcome, sister dear; Your husband's wrath you need not fear. But dwelling 'neath a milder star, Enjoy your dowry in Navarre." Young Gaston was now in the flower of his youth — The touchstone of honor, the mirror of truth — The lady, his mother, he mourned her afar, And bethought him to seek her in distant Navarre. She welcomed him gladly, but when he implored : " Come back to my father, your own loving lord," She answered him sadly : *' My Gaston must see That my lord, his dear father, cares nothing for me." Now his uncle the heart of young Gaston had read ; He took him aside, and, " Dear Cousin,' he said : "Your sadness, I think, I have fathomed it well ; You mourn that your mother an exile should dwell ? '* 324 TJNIVERSITY OF " 'Tis true, my dear uncle ; my grief I confess." " Then let it be comforted. I can repair This estrangement." " Dear Uncle, ah I how can I bless You enough ! " " See this casket of workmanship rare? The white powder within has a power to restore, Affection lost to the heart once more. Sprinkle some on your father's meat, Or anything he may chance to eat ; When he eats if he will sigh. He will wish your mother nigh. Quickly hither he will send, She to him her steps will bend, Then their son they both will bless, Restorer of their happiness." The youth took the casket with joy and delight, But the uncle averted his gaze from the sight, For, false as he was, he had never, till then, Used filial love to a murderous end. He parted abruptly, and slunk to his den. While his nephew, poor youth, was still blessing his "friend." Evan, that youth, so fair and good, '> Before De Foix one morning stood. ! Young Gaston's friend had he been reared ; But it was not friendship that now appeared j In his troubled voice and his ruffled air : | " Gaston has struck me a blow unfair ! ' A blow, my lord, I cannot endure. . ! If striking is to be done, I am sure, That Gaston deserves it rather than I, For he carries a casket on the sly \ Since home from the court of Navarre he came — ' A casket of powder. He hides it for shame — , NOTRE DAME. 326 I know not why, but he has told Of love restored, though long grown cold, Told of his hopes of my lady's return ; Though how it would happen I could not learn." " Peace ! " said the Count, " and what you know, Must not any further go. Accept this trifle and depart." And the present he gave him soothed his heart. Pensive although the Count remained, From further questions he refrained Till dinner, when at his right hand. Young Gaston always used to stand Attending on him. Every dish Offering or seeking at his wish (For thus did sons in the good old time Filial love and duty show. Disrespect was then a crime Never permitted unpunished to go.) But to our tale ; as Ga'^ton thus Attended ceremonious. With visage stern his father said : " Gaston ! come hither, hoy, " and laid His left hand on his throat. His right A dagger brandished. At the sight The youth grew pale, as if his life Were threatened, though his father's knife Cut but his doublet. From his breast The casket fell. " Ha ! let us test This powder. Call yon mongrel hound ; Its nature quickly shall be found." Sprinkled on meat, the luckless beast The powder ate, and scarce had ceased. When rolled in frightful agony The victim breathed his dying sigh. 326 UNIVERSITY OF " Ah ! traitor Gaston ! All for thee, And to increase thy broad domain. Have I incurred the enmity Of England, France, Navarre and Spain. For thee I fought — I ventured all — For thee I placed my life at stake ; And thou wouldst now in festive hall. That life by murd'rous treachery take ? Oh, monster ! Die I " He raised the knife ; But knights and squires on bended knee. Begged : " Spare, O, Count ! — Spare Gaston's life ! Slay not, until you further see Some clue to this strange mystery — Whether he may not guiltless be. Your only son — your only heir — So good erewhile, and still so fair ; Let him not die untried." And thus The Count, by voice unanimous, Was dissuaded ; and his son In dungeon dark was kept secure, Till justice strictly could be done — His crime disproved, or else made sure. Now Gaston thus in dungeon thrown, Lies ten days silent and alone. Nor will he drink, nor will he eat, Though near him stands untasted meat ; Until the warder, fearing lest The youth might perish unredressed, Goes to the Count and thus he says : •' Gaston eats nothing these ten days." The Count at evening ease reclined, His fingers held a pen-knife small ; And as he rose, enraged in mind. He thought not of this knife at all, li NOTRE DAME. 327 But rushed to Gaston's dungeon : " Why Dost thou not eat ? " exclaiming fierce ; And stumbling in obscurity, That knife a fatal vein did pierce. Gaston, too weak by lengthened fast, Shed a few drops of blood — his last ! The Count, so furious just before, ; Now wept and sighed and wept again, • Called him by name, and o'er and o'er, i Prayed his dear Gaston might remain ' To comfort his old age — 'Twas vain ! -! The youth was dead ; and then, too late, The tardy news — how tardy ! came, ' Of the deceit that caused his fate, i And of his uncle's lasting shame. 'i His father long in sackcloth went, { His royal pomp was all forgot, j His heart with cruel grief was rent, ] His anguish time diminished not. J For though he wears an outward guise 1 Of happiness from sorrow free, ' Yet listen to his lonely sighs, J And deem none blest by what you see. ' (a) The details of the character of the Count de Foix are taken from Froissart, Chapter 9, Vol. 3 : where also the tragic incidents which form the story may be found. (b) Froissart, Chapter 2S. Vol. 4, gives this high figure : " was always well provided with hounds of all sorts, having never less than sixteen hundred." .; (c) Charles, sumamed the Bad, King of Navarre. He died in 1387, aged 55 years. ] His de th was worthy of his life. He was wrapped up in cloths that had been dipped in spirits of wine and sulphur to reanimate the chill in his limbs, caused by ' his debaucheries, and to cure his leprosy. By some accident they caught fire, as ,1 they were sewing them about him, and burnt the flesh ofi" his bones. MWrntd 1870. GRADUATES IN COURSE. GXjJ^&& of 1870. Alfi^d W. Arrington. Mr. Alfred W. Arrington, son of the late Hon. A. W. Arrington, was born in Brownsville, Texas, on the 12th of June, 1850. In 1856, his father moved to the North- ern States, and after a brief residence in several of the States, finally, in 1859, settled permanently in Chicago, 111. Here, young Alfred, being then nine years old, attended the public schools till April, 1863, when he en- tered as a student in the University of IS'otre Dame. In 1865, he attended the College of St. Mary's of the Lake, in Chicago. In 1866, he attended Douglas Uni- versity, in Chicago. Mr. Arrington had been in rather delicate health for some time, and in 1867, was obliged NOTRE DAME. 329 to discontinue studies for nearly one year. In June, 1868, he entered a law office in Chicago, with a view^ to prepare himself for the bar. His mind, however, craved for something moi*e, and in October, 1868, he returned to Notre Dame, where he devoted himself with a mature and determined energy to the study of the classics and of the sciences. In June, 1869, besides holding a high place in the regnlar Collegiate Course, he was awarded the Second Silver Prize Medal in the Scientific Course. Having, by a persevering industry, completed the pre- scribed course, he was graduated a Bachelor of Arts, in June, 1870. Mr. Arrington possesses many of those noble qualities of mind and heart for which his illustrious father was so remarkable. Fearless and unswerving in canying out his honest convictions, yet affable and kind to all, he has ever been valued as a friend and respected as an exam- ple of uprightness and integrity by all who know him. William Waldo. Mr. William AValdo was born in Independence, Mis- souri, on the 10th of January, 1850. At an early age he began to attend school, and passed through the va- rious grades of schools in his native place, till, in 186^., he entered the high school and began his classical stud- ies. His talent and taste for study were so evident, 22 330 TENIVEESITY OF even at the age of fifteen, that his father determined to send him to college, and accordingly in September, 1866, Mr. Waldo entered the University of I'J'otre Dame, where he applied himself earnestly to the stndy of the bra,nches taught in the regular Collegiate Department, working his way ever still higher, till the Annual Com- mencement, in June, 1870, when he was graduated a Bachelor of Arts, receiving the testimony of his own successful industry, and of the entire satisfaction of the Faculty. By his amiable disposition and obliging manners, Mr. Waldo won the esteem of all, in the very beginning of his college course, and never lost the friendship of any one which he had once gained. He bore away with hira each year testimonies of his talents and industry, and in 1869 was awarded the First Prize Silver Medal for proficiency in classical studies, and also the Gold Medal of Excellence. Modest and unassuming, almost to timidity, Mr. Waldo must be known intimately before he can be fully appreciated ; but real merit will make itself known when the proper occasion oifers, and we look forward to the time, not far distant, when our young friend will receive the full credit of his ability and worth. Denis Augustin Claire. Mr. Denis A. Clarke was born in Columbus, Ohio, on the 15th of December, 1850. At the age of nine years NOTRE DAME. 331 he began to attend the parochial school connected with St. Patrick's church, in his native city, and then con- ducted by the Brothers of Holy Cross. He continued to attend school, with some brief interruptions, till Sep- tember, 1866, when his father, seeing that he gave evi- dence of unusual talent, determined to give him the ad- vantage of a college education. Accordingly, we find Mr. Clarke, at the age of sixteen, entering upon his collegiate studies at the University of Notre Dame. He first entered the Commercial Course, applying himself at the same time to the study of some of the sciences. In June, 1868, he received his diploma of Master of Accounts ; but not yet satisfied, he continued his studies in the Scientific Course, and at the Annual Commence- ment, in June, 1870, was graduated a Bachelor of Science, having the previous year received the Prize Gold Medal in his chosen course. Mr. Clarke w^as from the beginning to the end of his college course, a model of good behaviour and industry ;. his name appeared each year conspicuous on>the roll of honor, and he bears away with him the Gold Medal of Excellence — the highest mark which the University can give of its approval. May the career of this young gen- tleman, through life, be crowned with that success which by right belongs to the truly worthy. '33^ UNIVERSITT OF Rey, M.. M. Hallinan. Prof. L. G. Tong. We cannot send forth this Second Edition of the Silver Jubilee without paying a well-merited tribute to two gentlemen, whose long association with the University has been highly creditable to them- selves and advantageous to a vast number of young men who have enjoyed the benefits of their teaching. Kev, M. M. Hallinan, D. D., a graduate of the celebrated Semi- nary of St Sulpice, Paris, and for fifteen years Professor of Philo- sophy and Theology in the Seminary known as St. Mary's of the West, Cincinnati, Ohio, where he held the responsible position of Superior, engaged at Notre Dame in 1863, as Professor of Philoso- phy and Dogmatic Theology, and, with the exception of one year, during which he devoted himself to the care of souls on the mission, has taught these branches with distinguished success. During all the time of his stay at Notre Dame, Father Hallinan has enjoyed the esteem and respect of all, both professors and students, proving himself worthy of them, by his sterling ability as a scholar, and his amiable and unassuming manners toward all with whom he came in contact. Professor L. Gt. Tong, M. A., a graduate of the Commercial Course of this University, has occupied the position of Prof, of Book-keep- ing and Commercial Law at Notre Dame since 1861. His thorough- ness and zeal in the class-room has made a diploma in that Depart- ment a sure passport to the most desirable positions in mercantile pursuits, while his obliging disposition, affability and taintless integ- rity has made him a general favorite, and won for him the confidence and esteem of a wide circle of sincere friends. We would be glad to give a more lengthy sketch of these two gentlemen, but cannot in this edition, and must content ourselves for the present with this expression of the esteem in which they are held at Notre Dame— a tribute which justice and friendship de- manded. NOTRE DAME. 333 lijud^cs $: TO^ltra of miu mmt iniccraitg, INDIANA, FOR 187O. J BOARD OF TRUSTEES : j VERY REV. E. SORIN, S. S. C, President. j VERY REV. A. GRANGER, S. S. C, Vice-President. j REV. W. CORBY, S. S. C, Chancellor. ' REV. N. H. GILLESPIE, S. S. C, Treasurer. j REV. A. LEMONNIER, S. S. C, Secretary. j OFFICERS AND MEMBERS OF THE FACULTY : Rev. W. CORBY, S. S. C, President. Rev. a. LEMONNIER, S. S. C, Vice-Preeident, Director of Studies and Profes- sor of French. Rev. D. j. SPILLARD, S. S. C, Prefect of Discipline. Rev. a. GRANGER, S. S. C, Prefect of Religion and Professor of the Evidences and Principles of Christianity. Rev. N. H. GILLESPIE, S. S. C, Professor of English Literature. Rev. j. C. CARRIER. S. S. C, Librarian, Curator of the Museum, and Prof, of Natural Sciences. Rev. j. FRERE, S. S. C, Professor of French. Rev. M. B. BROWN, S. S. C, Professor of Moral Theology. Rev. T. L. VAGNIER, S. S. C, Professor of Natural Philosophy and Chemistry. Rev. p. LAUTH, S. S. C, Professor of German. Rev. M. M. HALLINAN, Professor of Moral Philosophy and Rhetoric. Rev. L. NEYRON, Professor of Anatomy, Physiology and Hygiene. Rev. JOHN LAUTH, S. S. C, Adjunct Professor of German. Eev. JACOB LAUTH, S. S. C, Adjunct Professor of Latin. 334 UNIVERSITY OF Rev. C. COMBEL, S. S. C, Adjunct Professor of French. Rev. PATRICK D'ARCY, S. S. C, Professor of Phonography. Rev. M. MUHLBERGER, S. S. C, Professor of Music. Rev. B. McCOLLUM, S. S. C, Professor of English. Mr. J. A. O'CONNELL, S. S. C, Adjunct Professor of Greek and Latin. Mr. F. X. DERRICK, S. S. C, Adjunct Professor of English and Elocution. T. E. HOWARD, A. M., Professor of English Literature and Astronomy. J. A. LYONS, A. M., Professor of Latin and English. W. J. rVERS, A. M., Professor of Mathematics. A. J. STACE, A. M., Professor of Mathematics. L. G. TONG, Master op Accounts, Professor of Book-keeping and Commer- cial Law. M. T.: CORBY, A. M., Professor of Vocal Music. M. A. J. BAASEN, A. M., Professor of Greek, Latin and German. P. FOOTE, A. M., Professor of Law. C. A. B. VON WELLER, Professor of Drawing and Painting. C. J. LUNDY, Professor of Penmanship. W. T. JOHNSON, A. B., Professor of Greek and Latin. Bro. FRANCIS DeSALES, General Steward. Bro. SIMEON, S. S. C, Teacher of the Irish Language. ADJ. PROFESSORS OF ENGLISH AMD ARITHMETIO : BROTHER BENJAMIN, S. S. C. BROTHER ALBAN, S. S. C. BROTHER PHILIP, S. S. C. BROTHER CELESTINE, S. S. C. PROFESSORS OF MUSIC: BROTHER BASIL, S. S. C, M. BOYNE, Director of the Band. BROTHER LEOPOLD, S. S. C. E. LILLY, S. S. C. ASSISTANT PREFECTS OF DISCIPLINE : ', BROTHER BENOIT, S. S. C. BROTHER ALBERT, S. S. C. BROTHER FLORENTIUS, S. S. C. BROTHER PAUL, S. S. C. BROTHER CAMILLUS, S. S. C. BROTHER FRANCIS, S. S. C. secretary: ass't secretary: REV. T. MAHER, S. S. C. BROTHER CELESTINE, S. S. C. NOTRE DAME. 335 )0(uim; Icligious, littmrg, tit. Kio^Baccs. ARCHCONFRATERNITY OF THE B. V. MARY. This Society was established in 1845, and is designed for Tatholic students alone. Its principal object is to obtain, through the intercession of the Blessed Mother of the Redeemer, the conversion of sinners throughout the world. Students of the Senior Department only are admitted into this Sodality. Officers— Xqxy Rev. A. Granger, S. S. C, Director; D. A. Clarke, B. S,, President : J. A. Zahm. Vice-President ; J. C. Eisenman, Recording Secretary ; D. TiGHE, Corresponding Secretary ; J. M. Gearin, Librarian. — 50 members. SODALITY OF OUR LADY OF THE SACRED HEART. Officers— Yerj Rev. A. Granger, S. S. C, Director; Brother Florentius, S. S. C, Assistant Director; P. Cochrane, President; J. Nash, Vice President; J. McGtJiRE, Secretary.— 87 members. THE HOLY ANGELS. This interesting Society, consisting of the students of the Junior Department, was organized as early as the year 1848. Its object is to secure the protection of the Blessed Spirits by a great purity of life and a ready submission to what duty requires. Officers— Rev. D. J. Spillard. S. S. C. President ; J. A. Nash, First Vice Presi- dent ; J. E. McGuiRE, Second Vice President; S. E. Dcm, Secretary; J. Kilcoin, Treasurer; D. J. Broavn, Librarian ; J. W. Wilstach, Assistant Librarian; M. J. Nolan, Censor.— 25 members. THE HOLY CHILDHOOD. This charitable institution, for the redemption of the children of Infidels in China and in other Pagan countries, and affiliated to the Society of the same name, was re-organized October 16th, 1869. Officers-BrotheT Emmanuel, S. S. C, Director: E. Haydel, President: M. Smyth. Vice President ; H. Trentman. Secretary ; C. Campeau, Treasurer ; H. Jones, Librarian ; G. Gross, Assistant Librarian.— 35 members. 336 TNIVERSITY OF ST. ALOYS lUS' PHILODEMIC. The o'bject of this Society, organized in 1851, (originally under the name of the St. Aloysius' Literary and Historical Society), is the cultivation of eloquence and the acquisition of an accurate knowledge of history. Being essentially a Debating Society, its members cannot fail to acquire a certain facility in writing and fluency in debate. Its ordinary meetings are held weekly, on Tuesday, from 7 o'clock to 9 o'clock, P. M. Officers, first session— Rev. D. J. Spillard, S. S. C, President ; J. Cunnea, A. B., Vice President; J. F. Edwards, Recording Secretary; J. A. Zahm, Corres- ponding Secretary : T. F. Heert, Treasurer ; H. Wrape, Librarian ; E. B. Gambee, Assistant Librarian : T. A. Dillon, J. Loobt, Censors. Officers, second session~Uev. D. J. Spillard, S. S. C, President ; J. K. Finlet, Vice President; J. A. Zahm, Recording Secretary ; J. M. Moriarty, Correspond- ing Secretary ; J M. Gearin, Treasurer; T. M. Johnson, Librarian; J. A. Dick- inson, Assistant Librarian; T. A. Dillon, Censor.— 30 members. ST. EDWARD'S LITERARY. The object of this Association is the improvement of its members in Literature and Elocution, and the means employed for the attainment of this object are the read- NOTRE DAME. 337 ing of orig:inal essays and the discussion of literary and historical subjects. The officers during: the scholastic years of 1869 and 1870 were as follows : Officers, first sesnon—lciev. A. Lemmonier. S. S. C, President ; J. E. Shannahaw, Vice President ; D.A.Clarke, B. S., Secretary ; J. C. Eiseman, Treasurer; E. J. FiTZHARRis, Librarian : E. B. Walker, Assistant Librarian ; D. Tighe, H. A. Barlow, Censors. Officers, second session— Re\. A.. Lemmonier, S. S. C, President; J. E. Shan- NAHAN, Vice President; J. M. Dufft, Secretary ; A. W. Arrington, Treasurer ; J. R. Boyd, Librarian ; D. Tighe, Assistant Librarian ; L. B. Logan, H. A. Bar- low, Censor*.— 20 members. UNITED SCIENTIFIC ASSOCIATION. This Society was founded in the spring of 186S for the prosecution of scientific researches. Officers^ first session— Rev. J. C Carrier, S. S. C, President; Prof. A. J, Stage A. M., Vice President ; F. Crapser. Secretary ; J. Cunnea, A. B., Treasu- rer ; F. BoDEMAN, Librarian ; J. A. Dickinson, Censor. Officers, second session— Rev. J. C. Carrier, S. S. C. President; Prof. A. J. Stage, A. M., Vice President; J. M. Gearin, Secretary; J. Finley, Treasurer; L. B. Logan, Librarian ; J. A. Dickinson, Censor. — 15 inembers. ST. CECILIA PHILOMATHEAN. " Excelsior ! " in deed and word ; — " The pen is mightier than the sword ; " Wouldst thou receive the starry crown f ^ In tuneful contest seek renown ;— "■ United for eternity ! " Ceciuans, such our motto be ! 338 TJJ!^IVEESITY OF This Society is one of the oldest and best at Notre Dame, is, at the same time, a Debating, Dramatic and Musical Association. Its exercises include Public Read- ing, Declamations, Essays and a Moot Court. It has a good library, and numbers forty members— the elite of the Junior Collegiate Department. The plays acted upon the stage for the purpose of bringing out the elocutionary powers of its members are written especially for them, and are intended to increase the love of virtue and righteousness. Their highly moral plays will soon be published by the St. Cecilia Society for the benefit of other societies and institutions which may be in need of such plays. Officers, first session—Rev. A. Lemmonier, S. S. C, Director ; Prof. J. A. Lyons, A.M., President; Prof. C. A. B. Von Weller. F. R. A., President Dramatic Branch ; J. W. Sutherla.nd, Vice President ; R. Stalet, Vice President Dramatic Branch ; D. J. Wile, Vice President Historic Branch ; V. Hackman, Honorary Vice President Orpheonic Branch ; M. Mahony, Recording Secretary ; W. B. Clark, Corresponding Secretary ; F. Kaiser, Treasurer ; C. Marani'Ette, J. McGuirb, Librarians ; C. Berdel, First Conductor of Public Entertainments ; C. Hutch- INGS, J. Nash, Monitors ; C. Dodge, Sergeant-at-Arms ; K. Long, Marshal. Officers, second session— Hev. A. Lemonnier, S. S. C, Director ; Profs. C. A. B, Von Weller, F. R. A., A. J. Stage, A. M., Presidents Dramatic Branch; Prof. P. FooTE, A. M., Judge of the Moot Court ; M. Mahony. Vice President; D. J. Wile, Honorary Vice President ; F. Dwyer, Vice President Dramatic Branch ; W. B. Clarke, Vice President Histrionic Branch ; J. Rumely. Vice President Orphe- onic Branch ; V. Hackman, Honorary Vice President Orpeonic Branch ; D. Egan, Secretary ; J. Nash, Corresponding Secretary ; C . Hutchings, Treasurer ; J. DoHERTY, C. FoRRESTAL, Monitors ; R. Staley, J. McOarRE, Librarians; P. Cochrane, C. Berdel, Conductors of Public Entertainments ; S. Ashton, Ser- geant-at-Arms and Censor ; T. Foley, Marshal. — 40 members. TWO PENNY CLUB. This organization, connected with the St. Aloysius' Philodemic Association, has had a career of nearly three years, and has fulfilled its aim of improving its mem- bers in the various departments of literary composition. It publishes a periodical, called the Two Penny Gazette, which is read every week before the regular meet- ing of the Philodemic Association. The number of its members, at first restricted to three, has since been allowed to increase to seven. Officers— Prot A. J. Stage, A. M., President; John M. Moriarity, Vice Presi- dent ; John M. Gerin, Scribe. Assistant Editors— yf . Waldo, A. B., J. A. Dickinson, J. A. Zahm, T. M. Johnson. THESPIAN SOCIETY. This Association has for its object the celebration of all our College festivals by dramatic representations. It also aims to cultivate in the students of the Univer- sity a taste for the classical drama, by presenting the plays of the most able writers whenever they can be adapted, without too great a change of plot, to male charac- ters only. NOTRE DAME. 339 Officers, first session— F. X. Derrick, S. S. C Director; A. W. Arrinqton, President ; J. C. Eisenman. Vice President ; J. Wilson, Secretary ; R. L. Akin, Treasurer ; L. B. Logan, First Stage Manager; J. A. Fox, Second Stage Manager ; H. P. MoRANCY, T. Dillon, Censors. Officers, second session— Prof. M. T. Corby, A. M., Director; A. W. Arring- TON, President; J. A. Fox, Vice President; L. B. Logan, Secretary: T. Dillon, Treasurer; H. P. Morancy, First Stage Manager ; L. Wilson, Second Stage Man- ager ; W. Roberts, Censor.— 16 members. UNIVERSITY CHOIR. Officers— Brother JjISOVoTjH, S. S. C, Leader; Brother Basil, S. S. C, Organist. JitembersSopRxsi—R. Staley, C. Hutchings, R. Hatchings, E. Shea, C. Jevne, J. Shanks, A. Hoeber, C. Ortmayer. Alti — J. Rumely, M. Mahony, T. Foley. Tenori— Prof. M. T. Corby, A. M., J. A. Dickinson, H. P. Morancy, J. C. Eisenraan, G. Riopelle, N. Mitchell, C. Duffy. Bassi— Prof. C. A. B. Von Weller, Rev. M. Muhlberger, S. S. C, A. Riopelle, J. A. Zahm, J. Garrity, D. Tighe. SODALITY CHOIR. Officers— E. Lily, S. S. C, Conductor: Prof. C. A. B. Von Weller, President ; Prof. M. A. J. Baasen, A. M. Vice President; J. A. Dickinson, Recording Secre- tary ; J. C. EiSENMAN Corresponding Secretary ; E. B. Walker, Treasurer. NOTRE DAME UNIVERSITY CORNET BAND. Officers— Prof. M. Boyne, President ; C. Clarke, Vice President ; J. Trudelle, Secreiary; L. Gibson, Treasurer. Leaders— Prof. M. Boyne, First E Flat ; L. Gibson, Second E Flat ; F. Bish, Third E Flat. CoRNETi— Prof. W. Ivers, Second B Flat ; N. Shelton, First B Flat. Alti— A. Riopelle, E Flat ; J. Gillespie, E Flat ; F. Troutman, E Flat. Tenori— J. Murphy, First B Flat ; G. Riopelle, Second B Flat. Basi— G. Webb, First B Flat, Principal Bass ; R. Crenshaw, First Bass ; C. Clarke, First E Flat Bass ; J. Trudell, First B Flat Contra Bass ; P. Talbot, Second B Flat Bass. C. McCollister, Snare Drum ; P. Davis, Bass Drum ; E. Jameson, Cymbals. 340 UNIVERSITY OF UNIVERSITY ORCHESTRA. Prof. C. A. B. Von Weller, Leader ; Rev. M. Muhlberer, S. S. C, First Violin; Bro. Leopold, S. S. C. Second Violin ; J. Rumely, Second Violin; Bro. Basil, S. S. C, Viola ; W. H. Morpht, Flute ; W. Clarke. Flute ; Prof. M. Botne, First Cornet ; N. Shelton, Second Cornet ; G. Webb. Trombone ; E. Lilly, S. S. C, First Violoncello ; J. O'Connel, S. S. C. Second Violoncello ; Prof. W. Ivors, A. M., Contra Bass ; C. McColhster, Side Drum. NOTRE DAME CHESS CLUB. Officers—Prol M. A. J. Baasen, A. M., Director; Prof. A. J. Stage, A.M., President; Prof. W. T. Johnson. A. B., Vice President; J. A. O'Reilly, A. B., Corresponding Secretary ; J. C. Eisenman, Recording Secretary ; D. A. Clarke, S. B., Treasurer.— 1 members. NOTRE DAME. 341 CELEBRATION ON THE OCCASION OF THE TWENTY-SIXTH Annual Commencement of the University of Notre Dame, JUNE 21st and 22d, 1S70, CONSISTING OP POEMS, ORATIONS, DRAMATIC REPRESENTATIONS BY THE THESPIAN AND ST. CECILIA SOCIETIES, THE GRAND CANTATA OF THE LAST SILVER JUBILEE ; OVERTURES AND SYM- PHONIES BY THE NOTRE DAME ORCHESTRA, AND MARCHES BY THE N. D. U. BRASS BAND. PROGRAMME. TUESDAY FORENOON. Six o'clock A. M. Solemn Hisrh Mass. Celebrant VervRev. Father Sorin, S. S. C, Superior General. Deacon, Rev. \V. Corby. S. S. C. Sub Deacon. Rev. A. Lemonnier. S. S. C. Master of Ceremonies, Rev. D. J. Spillard, S. S. C. Generalis' Italian Mass, by Notre Dame Choir. 7.30 o'clock. Breakfast. 9 o'clock. Reception of Alumni, and Business meeting. AFTERNOON AND EVENING. 1 o'clock P. M. Banquet of the Alumni. 3.30 o'clock. Regatta on Lake St. Joseph. 6 o'clock. Supper. 7 o'clock. Evening Entertainment. PART 1. Grand Entrance March N. D. U. Brass Band Overture, '* Domino Noir," Auber N. D. U. Orchestra Grand Cantata of the last Silver Jubilee Vocalists of Notre Dame Greek Speech, -'Oratory," M. Mahony, of the St. Cecilia Philomathean Society Latin Address W. Waldo, of the St. Alovsis Phiiodemic Society Quartette .'. Horns Address from the Scientific Department... D. A, Clarke, of the St. Edwards Society Address from the Commercial Department J. E. Eiseman, St. Edwards Society Music N. D. U. Brass Band PART 11. Overture, "William Tell," N. D. U. Orchestra 342 UNIVERSITY OF WIIililAM TElIili— A DBAMA IK THREE ACTS. , Presented by the members of the Thespian Society, under the direction of Prof. M. T. Corby, A. M. Dramatis Fersonce . i Gesler L. B. Logan Samem John Mulhall Eudolph W. Murphy Lutold E. B. Gambee - WILLEAM TELL J. R. BOYD j Albert... .J. Sutherland \ Melctal J. M. Moriarty i Erni J. R. Fox i Furst John Duffy Verner D. Hibbard Michael H, P. Morancy , Theodore T. Dillon Pierre F. Kaiser j Hermann L. Wilson ' Olficers, Archers, Soldiers, Villagers, Citiizens, etc. ; Music after 1st and 2d Act, by the N. D. U. Brass Band j BENEFIT OF HANGING— A fabce in one act. I Overture, "Tancredi," Rossini N. D. U. Orche'stra < Dramatis Fersonce. \ Old Screw D. Hibbard Old Nail John Mitchell ; Goliath Spiderlimb J. A. Fox Captain Darling L. Wilson Giles Sowthistle H. P. Morancy \ Theodoi-e Button J. Sutherland Old Gammon F. Kaiser ; OldSpinage T. Dillon , Music N. D. U. Brass Band j WEDNESDAY MORNING. ] Seven o'clock A. M. Breakfast. I 8.30 o'clock. Commencement Exercises. , Overture. ^ Domino Noir," Auber N. D. U. Orchestra ' Law and Lawyers— Address J. A. O'Reilly, A. B., of the Law Department j Duett— "I would that my Love," Mendelssohn ...Messrs. A. Riopelle & J. Mulhall I "Hail Columbia," N. D, U. Brass Band The Columbian Master L. Hayes, St. Cecelia Philomathean Society i Duett — '•'^ Semiramide," Masters R. Staley and J. Rumley j THE UPSTART— A comedy in three acts. | Translated from Moliere, and arranged for the St. Cecelian Philomathean Society of the Junior Collegiate Department, by a member of the Faculty. Prologue Scott Ashton Overture, "William Tell," N. D. U. Orchestra Dramatis Fersonce. Mr. Jordan, the Upstart C. Burdell Old Mr. Jordan, his Father .S. Ashton NOTRE DAME. 343 Cleon. in love with Mr. Jordan's daughter T. Foley Covielle, a valet to Cleon W. B. Clarke Doranto, a Count F. P. Dwyer Dorimenes, a Marquis B. Roberta Signore F*rofnn do. Professor of Philosophy J. Nash Signore Bassilio, Music Teacher R. Staley Fiorello. his Pupil J. Rumley Figaro, Dancing Master C. Hutchings Jeronimo, Fencing Master P. Cochrane Nicholas, a privileged servant of Mr. Jordan's M. Mahony Ali Bey, the Muphti J. McGuire Signof Crispino, a Tailor D. Brown Giacomo ~| f J. Doherty Paolo I TradPsmPTi J C. Forrestal Beppo f Araaesmen. < J.Thomson Pedro J [ C.Morgan Baptista, Ist Footman J. Kilcoin Carlo. 2d Footman C. Ortmayer Pasquela. Rigoletto .. Filippo Poliuto ..... Prestolo.... Alvina Rigolo Francesco . Bourn Fenail Bachisaid . Norbert.... Kamyl Faud Bob . Haroun Selim Abdelkish. Musicians. D. Egan ... J. Kinkade .... H. O'Neill V. McKinnon K. I. Espy r K. I. Espy rr«»^=i«v.,^-«„«o J James Christy Terpsichoreans. ^ Lewis Hayes L E. Shea Turks. Hayes E. Shea ' ."". Leo McOsker S. Dum L. Roth J. Gallager H.Ackhoflf H. Luhn ....Jas. Hunnaher t Walter Wilstach Abaelkish i mi,^ ■n^^.s^-.o J F.C.Randall Alrashid \ TheDervises. -j J. Antoine Pompey ( ii r<.,ii„.n>„o»„«» 11 J J.Goodhue Cuffey \ CuUudPusauns. -j J. Shanks Grand Turkish Dance. Epilogue C. Burdell March N, D. U. Brass Band " O Home, Sweet Home.'"— Poetic Address W. B. Clarke Quartette— O Lorenz R. Staley, C. Ortmayer, C. Hutchings, J. Rumley Poem of tlie Alumni Prof. A. J. Stace, A. M. Grand Cantata Musical Societies of Notre Dame Valedictory A. W. Arrington Music N. D. U. Brass Band CONFERRING OF DEGREES. Solemn Distribution of Premiums. Awarding of Diplomas in Commercial Department, of Prizes in Classical, Scien- tific, Commercial and Preparatory Departments. Awarding of Second Honors. Awarding of First Honors. Music— March N. D. U. Brass Band Oration of tlie Day. Grand Retiring March : N. D. U. Brass Band 344 ^ TINIVERSITY OF NOTRE DAME. T. MaRY'S AlCADEyVLY, NOTRE DAME, IND. c\ <^ I T. MARY'S ACADEMY, under the direction of the Sisters of the Holy Cross, is situated on the St. Joseph River, eighty miles east ot Chicago, via Michigan South- ern Railroad, and two miles from the flourishing town of South Bend The site of St. Mary's is one to claim the ■ -^ ■ — ■ admiration of every beholder. It would appear that nature had anticipated the use to w^hich the grounds were to be applied, and had disposed her advantages to meet the requirements of such an establishment. Magnificent forest trees rising from the banks of one of the most beautiful rivers in the Mississippi Valley, still stand in native grandeur ; the music of bright waters and health- ful breezes inspire activity and energy, while the quiet seclusion invites to reflection and study. We are happy to inform our patrons that we have at length been able to realize a long cherished desire of opening a School of Design, w^here choice models in busts, chromos and oil paintings, in the dif- ferent schools liave been collected, and where full courses will be given by eflicient teachers in all the various departments of Drawing and Painting. For Catalogue, address ^^^ . „ MOTHER M. ANGELA, Superior, St. Mary's Academy, Notre Dame P. O., Indiana. ^^ MI u 4- * ^s. I ^^ -^c^. o>' >%-.., V \, - ; .>:^' % ^V ^0 o^ » '^^'.R^.' , • s- ' "^^ V* ,0o. .^ .6- "■ x> ?V ^'^ "'/-•"' \: «': • ( O^ •^ ^ J\ .\^ »v... ^A v. ^' V. .< : ,<^' ■''■p. o :. - -s >^ : ■ LIBRARY OF CONGRESS 028 333 184 2 H-:K^P^H'